Selected quad for the lemma: blood_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
blood_n body_n bread_n signify_v 12,985 5 8.1471 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A66174 A discourse of the Holy Eucharist, in the two great points of the real presence and the adoration of the Host in answer to the two discourses lately printed at Oxford on this subject : to which is prefixed a large historical preface relating to the same argument. Wake, William, 1657-1737. 1687 (1687) Wing W240; ESTC R4490 116,895 178

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

599._o ibid._n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o in_o the_o eucharist_n there_o be_v only_o a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n nor_o do_v we_o say_v that_o in_o it_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n only_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n but_o we_o join_v the_o ground_n with_o the_o fruit_n affirm_v with_o st._n paul_n that_o the_o bread_n which_o by_o god_n appointment_n we_o break_v be_v the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o drink_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a blood_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a same_o substance_n which_o he_o receive_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o which_o he_o carry_v up_o with_o he_o into_o the_o heaven_n then_o descend_v to_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n it_o overthrow_v say_v he_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o of_o his_o ascension_n so_o little_o do_v he_o suppose_v that_o christ_n natural_a body_n can_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n hereupon_o he_o explain_v himself_o yet_o far_a but_o now_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v ask_v of_o we_o whether_o we_o make_v christ_n absent_a from_o the_o holy_a supper_n we_o answer_v by_o no_o mean_n but_o yet_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o distance_n of_o place_n as_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n and_o of_o his_o humanity_n we_o must_v we_o affirm_v say_v he_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v as_o far_o distant_a from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n if_o any_o one_o shall_v from_o thence_o conclude_v that_o we_o make_v christ_n absent_a from_o the_o holy_a supper_n he_o will_v conclude_v amiss_o for_o this_o honour_n we_o allow_v to_o god_n that_o though_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v now_o in_o heaven_n and_o not_o elsewhere_o and_o we_o on_o earth_n and_o not_o elsewhere_o yet_o be_v we_o make_v partaker_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n and_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o faith._n thus_o do_v beza_n in_o like_a manner_n expound_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n by_o a_o real_a communion_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o flat_o condemn_v our_o author_n invention_n martyr_n peter_z martyr_n of_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v be_v either_o in_o the_o symbol_n or_o any_o where_o else_o upon_o earth_n the_o same_o be_v the_o account_n which_o 1561._o which_o respond●o_fw-la pro_fw-la meâ_fw-la parte_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la else_o verè_fw-la et_fw-la substantialiter_fw-la alibi_fw-la quàm_fw-la in_o calo._n non_fw-la tamen_fw-la inficior_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la verum_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la illius_fw-la verum_fw-la quae_fw-la pro_fw-la salute_v humana_fw-la cradita_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o cruse_n fide_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la percipi_fw-la in_o sacrâ_fw-la coenâ_fw-la histoire_n eccles._n de_fw-fr beze_n liv_o 4._o p._n 606._o anno_fw-la 1561._o peter_n martyr_n in_o the_o same_o conference_n give_v of_o it_o and_o of_o who_o 518._o who_o vid._n hist_o de_fw-fr beze_n ib._n p._n 599._o comment_fw-fr de_fw-fr stat_fw-la rel_n p._n 140._o ad_fw-la ann_n 1561._o hospin_n pag._n 518._o espensius_fw-la one_o of_o the_o popish_a delegate_n confess_v that_o no_o divine_a of_o that_o time_n have_v speak_v so_o clear_o and_o distinct_o concern_v this_o sacrament_n as_o he_o do_v and_o however_o 520._o however_o see_v hospin_n of_o this_o whole_a matter_n pag._n 520._o genebrard_n fase_o pretend_v that_o the_o other_o protestant_n dissent_v from_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o they_o all_o subscribe_v the_o very_a same_o paper_n out_o of_o which_o he_o read_v his_o declaration_n but_o i_o will_v close_v this_o with_o the_o same_o word_n with_o which_o these_o protestant_n do_v their_o final_a resolution_n in_o the_o colloquy_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n 1561._o affirmamus_fw-la nullam_fw-la locorum_fw-la distantiam_fw-la impedire_fw-la posse_fw-la communicationem_fw-la quam_fw-la habemus_fw-la cum_fw-la christi_fw-la corpore_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la quoniam_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la est_fw-la res_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la et_fw-la quamvis_fw-la in_o terrâ_fw-la recipiamus_fw-la ore_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la vera_fw-la scil_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la signa_fw-la tamen_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o spiritûs_fw-la sancti_fw-la operatione_n mentes_fw-la nostrae_fw-la quarum_fw-la hic_fw-la est_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la cibus_fw-la in_fw-la caelum_fw-la elatae_fw-la perfruuntur_fw-la corpore_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la praesente_fw-la et_fw-la hoc_fw-la respectu_fw-la dicimus_fw-la corpus_fw-la verè_fw-la se_fw-la pani_fw-la conjungere_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la vino_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la tamen_fw-la quam_fw-la sacramentali_fw-la ratione_fw-la neque_fw-la locali_fw-la neque_fw-la naturali_fw-la mode_n sed_fw-la quoniam_fw-la efficaciter_fw-la significant_a deum_fw-la illa_fw-la dare_v fideliter_fw-la communicantibus_fw-la illósque_fw-la side_n verè_fw-la &_o certo_fw-la percipere_fw-la hospin_n l_o c._n comm._n ibid._n p._n 142._o vbi_fw-la sublicitur_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la perspicua_fw-la de_fw-fr corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la i_o c._n praesentia_fw-la in_o sacramento_n caenae_n ecclesiarum_fw-la beformatarum_fw-la sentenria_fw-la beze_n hist_o eccles._n pag._n 615._o where_o he_o add_v that_o they_o reject_v not_o only_a transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n but_o also_o toute_fw-fr maniere_n de_fw-fr presence_n par_fw-fr laquelle_fw-fr le_fw-fr corpse_n de_fw-fr christ_n n'est_fw-fr colloquè_fw-fr maintenant_fw-fr reellem●nt_fw-fr ailleurs_fw-fr qu'au_fw-fr ciel_fw-fr and_o then_o add_v why_o they_o thus_o use_v the_o word_n substance_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o see_v pag._n 615._o ad_fw-la ann_n 1561._o we_o affirm_v that_o no_o distance_n of_o place_n can_v hinder_v the_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n because_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o though_o upon_o earth_n we_o receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n bread_n and_o wine_n viz._n the_o true_a symbol_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n yet_o by_o faith_n and_o through_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n our_o soul_n of_o which_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a food_n be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n enjoy_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n present_a and_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o say_v that_o the_o body_n do_v true_o join_v its_o self_n to_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o blood_n to_o the_o wine_n but_o yet_o not_o otherwise_o than_o sacramental_o neither_o after_o a_o local_a or_o natural_a manner_n but_o because_o they_o do_v effectual_o signify_v that_o god_n give_v they_o to_o the_o faithful_a communicant_n and_o that_o they_o do_v by_o faith_n true_o and_o certain_o receive_v they_o and_o thus_o far_o i_o have_v consider_v the_o foreign_a divine_n produce_v by_o our_o author_n and_o in_o which_o we_o find_v the_o very_a same_o explication_n which_o our_o church_n give_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n for_o our_o own_o author_n i_o shall_v insist_v the_o rather_o upon_o they_o both_o to_o take_v off_o any_o impression_n which_o the_o scrap_n here_o put_v together_o by_o those_o who_o business_n it_o be_v to_o represent_v their_o own_o sense_n not_o their_o author_n may_v otherwise_o be_v apt_a to_o make_v upon_o some_o man_n and_o also_o to_o show_v the_o exact_a concord_n there_o have_v be_v ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n among_o we_o as_o to_o this_o matter_n now_o for_o what_o concern_v our_o divine_n in_o king_n edward_n vi_o this_o time_n we_o have_v our_o author_n own_o confession_n that_o towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o that_o excellent_a prince_n they_o seem_v to_o have_v deny_v any_o such_o real_a and_o essential_a presence_n as_o he_o will_v fasten_v upon_o those_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n after_o for_o as_o the_o first_o day_n of_o this_o prince_n 19_o 1_o treatise_n treatise_n xxvi_o pag_n 19_o say_v he_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v more_o addict_v to_o lutheranism_n so_o the_o latter_a day_n to_o zwinglianism_n as_o appear_v in_o several_a expression_n of_o bishop_n ridley_n and_o peter_n martyr_n and_o indeed_o the_o article_n agree_v upon_o in_o the_o convocation_n at_o london_n 1562._o plain_o show_v it_o in_o the_o xxixth_o of_o which_o we_o find_v this_o express_a clause_n since_o the_o very_a be_v of_o humane_a nature_n do_v require_v that_o the_o body_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n can_v be_v at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n in_o many_o place_n but_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v in_o some_o certain_a and_o determinate_a place_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v present_a in_o many_o different_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o since_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n testify_v christ_n have_v be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v to_o abide_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o become_v not_o any_o of_o the_o faithful_a to_o believe_v or_o profess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a or_o corporal_a
matter_n can_v have_v live_v so_o long_o in_o the_o world_n without_o hear_v of_o so_o eminent_a a_o matter_n in_o our_o church-history_n as_o this_o the_o author_n be_v treat_v about_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o article_n establish_v in_o king_n edward_n the_o six_n time_n 1683._o dr._n burnet_n hist_n of_o the_o refomation_n vol_n 2._o pag._n 405._o ann._n 1559._o edit_fw-la 2._o 1683._o and_o those_o in_o q._n elizabeth_n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n leave_v out_o for_o instead_o of_o that_o large_a refutation_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n from_o the_o impossibility_n of_o a_o body_n be_v in_o more_o place_n at_o once_o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o since_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n the_o faithful_a ought_v not_o to_o believe_v or_o profess_v a_o real_a or_o corporal_a presence_n of_o it_o in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o new_a article_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v and_o receive_v after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n cant._n m_o s_o s_o c._n cor._n christ_n cant._n and_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o it_o be_v receive_v be_v faith._n but_o in_o the_o original_a copy_n of_o these_o article_n which_o i_o have_v see_v subscribe_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o that_o sit_v in_o either_o house_n of_o convocation_n there_o be_v a_o further_a addition_n make_v the_o article_n be_v subscribe_v with_o that_o precaution_n which_o be_v requisite_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n for_o before_o the_o subscription_n there_o be_v set_v down_o the_o number_n of_o the_o page_n and_o of_o the_o line_n in_o every_o page_n of_o the_o book_n to_o which_o they_o set_v their_o hand_n in_o that_o article_n of_o the_o eucharist_n these_o word_n be_v add_v sacrament_n a_o explanation_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n when_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n make_v his_o body_n immortal_a but_o take_v not_o from_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n for_o still_o it_o retain_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o verity_n of_o a_o humane_a body_n which_o must_v be_v always_o in_o one_o definite_a place_n and_o can_v be_v spread_v into_o many_o or_o all_o place_n at_o once_o since_o than_o christ_n be_v carry_v up_o to_o heaven_n be_v to_o remain_v there_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v to_o come_v from_o thence_o and_o from_o no_o place_n else_o as_o say_v s._n austin_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a none_o of_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o believe_v or_o profess_v the_o real_a or_o as_o they_o call_v it_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o this_o in_o the_o original_a be_v dash_v over_o with_o minium_n yet_o so_o that_o it_o be_v still_o legible_a the_o secret_a of_o it_o be_v this_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o council_n study_v as_o have_v be_v already_o show_v to_o unite_v all_o into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o such_o a_o express_a definition_n against_o a_o real_a presence_n may_v drive_v from_o the_o church_n many_o who_o be_v still_o of_o that_o persuasion_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v think_v to_o be_v enough_o to_o condemn_v transubstantiation_n and_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v present_a after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n and_o receive_v by_o faith._n to_o say_v more_o as_o it_o be_v judge_v superflous_a so_o it_o may_v occasion_v division_n upon_o this_o these_o word_n be_v by_o common_a consent_n leave_v out_o and_o in_o the_o next_o convocation_n the_o article_n be_v subscribe_v without_o they_o of_o which_o i_o have_v also_o see_v the_o original_a this_o show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n subscribe_v by_o the_o whole_a convocation_n be_v at_o that_o time_n contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o real_a or_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n only_o it_o be_v not_o think_v necessary_a or_o expedient_a to_o publish_v it_o though_o from_o this_o silence_n which_o flow_v not_o from_o their_o opinion_n but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o that_o time_n in_o leave_v a_o liberty_n for_o different_a speculation_n as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n some_o have_v since_o infer_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o this_o church_n do_v then_o disapprove_v of_o the_o definition_n make_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n and_o that_o they_o be_v for_o a_o real_a presence_n thus_o that_o learned_a historian_n and_o here_o let_v our_o adversary_n consider_v what_o he_o think_v of_o this_o account_n and_o whether_o after_o so_o evident_a a_o confutation_n from_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n of_o his_o objection_n before_o it_o appear_v we_o may_v not_o reasonable_o complain_v both_o of_o his_o weakness_n and_o in-sincerity_n neither_o to_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o such_o a_o plain_a history_n of_o this_o whole_a transaction_n or_o to_o imagine_v that_o so_o vain_a a_o surmise_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n be_v a_o great_a propugner_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o obviate_v so_o clear_a and_o particular_a a_o account_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o though_o this_o may_v suffice_v to_o show_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o this_o queen_n that_o be_v before_o profess_v in_o her_o brother_n reign_n yet_o it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o discover_v a_o little_a further_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o how_o false_o this_o author_n have_v allege_v those_o great_a name_n he_o have_v produce_v i_o will_v therefore_o beg_v leave_n to_o continue_v my_o proof_n with_o a_o induction_n of_o the_o most_o eminent_a of_o our_o divine_n that_o i_o have_v at_o this_o time_n the_o opportunity_n to_o consult_v to_o our_o own_o day_n and_o first_o for_o bishop_n jewel_n jewel_n bp._n jewel_n though_o the_o part_n he_o have_v in_o the_o convocation_n before_o mention_v may_v sufficient_o assure_v we_o of_o his_o opinion_n yet_o it_o may_v not_o be_v improper_a to_o repeat_v the_o very_a word_n of_o a_o person_n of_o his_o learning_n and_o eminence_n in_o our_o church_n in_o his_o reply_n to_o harding_n thus_o he_o express_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o the_o real_a presence_n etc._n vth_z article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n against_o harding_n pag._n 237._o lond._n 1611._o see_v also_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag._n 219_o etc._n etc._n whereas_o mr._n harding_n thus_o unjust_o report_v of_o we_o that_o we_o maintain_v a_o naked_a figure_n and_o a_o bare_a sign_n or_o token_n only_o and_o nothing_o else_o he_o know_v well_o we_o feed_v not_o the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o bare_a sign_n and_o figure_n but_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n be_v holy_a mystery_n and_o that_o in_o the_o ministration_n thereof_o christ_n be_v set_v before_o we_o even_o as_o he_o be_v crucify_v upon_o the_o cross_n we_o teach_v the_o people_n not_o that_o a_o naked_a sign_n or_o token_n but_o that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n indeed_o and_o very_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o very_o eat_v it_o that_o we_o very_o drink_v it_o that_o we_o very_o be_v relieve_v and_o live_v by_o it_o that_o we_o be_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o yet_o we_o say_v not_o either_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v do_v away_o or_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v let_v down_o from_o heaven_n or_o make_v real_o or_o fleshly_a present_n in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v teach_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a father_n to_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o heaven_n and_o there_o to_o feed_v upon_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n thus_o spiritual_o and_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n even_o as_o very_o as_o his_o body_n be_v very_o break_v and_o his_o blood_n very_o shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n indeed_o the_o bread_n that_o we_o receive_v with_o our_o bodily_a mouth_n be_v a_o earthly_a thing_n and_o therefore_o a_o figure_n as_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n be_v likewise_o also_o a_o figure_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o thereby_o be_v represent_v and_o there_o be_v offer_v unto_o our_o faith_n be_v the_o thing_n itself_o and_o not_o figure_n to_o conclude_v three_o thing_n herein_o we_o must_v consider_v one_a that_o we_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o be_v signify_v 2._o that_o we_o seek_v christ_n above_o in_o heaven_n and_o imagine_v not_o he_o to_o be_v present_a bodily_a upon_o the_o earth_n 3._o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v eat_v by_o faith_n only_o and_o none_o
whilst_o so_o present_a which_o be_v during_o the_o action_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n i._n e._n say_v he_o as_o i_o conceive_v they_o from_o the_o consecration_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v i_o answer_v first_o as_o to_o the_o former_a part_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v indeed_o suppose_v christ_n to_o be_v present_a not_o only_o to_o the_o worthy_a communicant_n but_o also_o to_o the_o consecrate_a symbol_n but_o now_o second_o for_o the_o other_o part_n that_o during_o the_o action_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n he_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v there_o this_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a for_o 1._o i_o do_v not_o find_v any_o thing_n establish_v among_o they_o as_o to_o this_o matter_n neither_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o auxpourg_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o public_a act_n of_o their_o church_n 2._o i_o find_v several_a of_o their_o divine_n utter_o deny_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o our_o 16._o our_o see_v below_o disc_n 2._o p._n 16._o author_n himself_o confess_v it_o though_o now_o 3._o 1678._o 3._o conrade_n schlusselburgius_n catal._n haeret_fw-la l._n 3._o arg_n 45._o p._n 205._o item_n arg._n 103._o p._n 280._o it._n arg_fw-mi 174._o p._n 327._o francof_n 1605._o and_o hospinian_n quote_v it_o of_o luther_n himself_o that_o it_o be_v his_o opinion_n concord_n discor_fw-la p._n 358._o n._n 16._o genev._n 1678._o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o some_o other_o of_o they_o do_v allow_v if_o not_o that_o christ_n body_n yet_o that_o christ_n himself_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v after_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o conceive_v do_v by_o the_o action_n mean_v as_o our_o author_n here_o represent_v it_o from_o the_o consecration_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o communion_n so_o that_o then_o with_o this_o limitation_n his_o proposition_n i_o presume_v may_v be_v admit_v that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v present_a during_o the_o action_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v by_o several_a of_o they_o suppose_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v adore_v in_o it_o as_o to_o the_o six_o and_o last_o concession_n 11._o concession_n vi_fw-it p._n 10_o 11._o which_o he_o draw_v from_o mounseur_fw-fr daille_n apologi●●_n that_o though_o we_o do_v not_o ourselves_o belive_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n christ_n s_o body_n in_o the_o sign_n yet_o neither_o do_v we_o esteem_v the_o belief_n of_o it_o so_o criminal_a as_o to_o oblige_v we_o to_o break_v off_o communion_n with_o all_o those_o that_o hold_v it_o and_o therefore_o that_o have_v the_o roman_a church_n no_o other_o error_n but_o this_o that_o it_o will_v not_o have_v give_v we_o any_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n from_o it_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o admit_v it_o always_o suppose_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o have_v not_o be_v press_v upon_o we_o neither_o as_o a_o necessary_a article_n of_o communion_n nor_o any_o anathema_n pronounce_v against_o we_o for_o not_o receive_v it_o and_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o it_o which_o he_o subjoin_v 11._o ibid._n pag._n 11._o that_o a_o disciple_n give_v divine_a honour_n upon_o mistake_n to_o another_o person_n much_o resemble_v our_o saviour_n christ_n will_v have_v be_v no_o idolater_n from_o whence_o he_o will_v infer_v that_o therefore_o allow_v a_o consecrate_a host_n to_o be_v true_o adorable_a a_o person_n that_o shall_v by_o mistake_n adore_v a_o unconsecrated_a one_o will_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n we_o be_v content_a to_o allow_v it_o though_o what_o use_v he_o can_v make_v of_o it_o in_o this_o controversy_n unless_o against_o his_o own_o brethren_n s._n thomas_n paludanus_n and_o other_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v since_o he_o know_v we_o utter_o deny_v any_o host_n consecrate_v or_o not_o to_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v worship_v and_o this_o may_v serve_v for_o his_o first_o foundation_n of_o protestant_a concession_n which_o be_v they_o every_o one_o as_o certain_a as_o his_o first_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v i_o can_v see_v what_o his_o cause_n will_v gain_v by_o it_o and_o he_o have_v not_o by_o any_o application_n of_o they_o in_o this_o treatise_n give_v we_o the_o least_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o they_o be_v of_o any_o moment_n in_o it_o but_o some_o man_n have_v a_o peculiar_a faculty_n of_o amuse_v the_o world_n with_o nothing_o and_o i_o remember_v i_o once_o hear_v a_o judicious_a and_o modest_a man_n give_v this_o character_n of_o a_o author_n much_o resemble_v we_o with_o reference_n to_o his_o guide_n in_o controversy_n that_o for_o a_o book_n which_o carry_v a_o great_a appearance_n of_o reason_v it_o have_v the_o least_o in_o it_o of_o any_o he_o ever_o meet_v with_o but_o i_o go_v on_o ii_o assertion_n 2._o part._n catholic_n assertion_n to_o his_o catholic_n assertion_n and_o first_o catholic_n as_o he_o call_v they_o affirm_v in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o the_o consecration_n ix_o pag._n 13._o 13._o ix_o a_o sign_n or_o symbol_n to_o remain_v still_o distinct_a and_o have_v a_o divers_a existence_n from_o that_o of_o the_o thing_n signify_v or_o from_o christ_n body_n contain_v in_o or_o under_o it_o this_o it_o be_v true_a the_o papist_n or_o if_o you_o please_v the_o catholic_n do_v affirm_v because_o that_o otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o call_v it_o a_o sacrament_n but_o now_o if_o we_o inquire_v what_o that_o which_o they_o call_v a_o sign_n or_o a_o symbol_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v we_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v neither_o such_o as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n establish_v nor_o indeed_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n be_v so_o term_v for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o symbol_n institute_v by_o he_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n they_o be_v these_o that_o he_o take_v and_o bless_v and_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o command_v they_o also_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o take_v and_o bless_v and_o give_v to_o other_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o and_o as_o the_o symbol_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o now_o for_o the_o papist_n they_o destroy_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n they_o leave_v only_o a_o few_o airy_a empty_a species_n that_o be_v appearance_n of_o something_o but_o which_o be_v real_o nothing_o have_v no_o substance_n to_o support_v they_o the_o symbol_n establish_v by_o christ_n be_v festival_n symbol_n a_o matter_n apt_a for_o our_o corporal_a nourishment_n so_o signify_v to_o we_o that_o as_o by_o they_o viz._n by_o bread_n and_o wine_n our_o body_n be_v nourish_v to_o a_o corporal_a life_n so_o by_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o both_o represent_v and_o communicate_v to_o we_o our_o soul_n be_v feed_v to_o life_n everlasting_a but_o for_o that_o which_o have_v no_o substance_n i._n e._n nothing_o which_o can_v be_v convert_v into_o our_o bodily_a nourishment_n how_o that_o can_v be_v a_o symbol_n of_o this_o spiritual_a food_n i_o do_v not_o very_o well_o understand_v indeed_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o x._o pag._n 14._o 14._o x._o that_o though_o after_o consecration_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v deny_v to_o remain_v yet_o be_v substance_n here_o take_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o that_o neither_o the_o hardness_n nor_o the_o softness_n nor_o the_o frangibility_n nor_o the_o savour_n nor_o the_o odour_n nor_o the_o nutritive_a virtue_n of_o the_o bread_n nor_o nothing_o visible_a or_o tangible_a or_o otherwise_o perceptible_a by_o any_o sense_n be_v involve_v in_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o symbol_n or_o external_a sign_n then_o in_o this_o eucharist_n be_v according_a to_o they_o a_o hard_a soft_a frangible_a gustible_a odoriferous_a nutritive_a visible_a tangible_a perceptible_a nothing_o very_o a_o fit_a external_a species_n indeed_o to_o contain_v a_o one_o manifold_a visible_a invisible_a extend_v unextend_v local_a illocal_a absent_a present_a natural_a supernatural_a corporal_a spiritual_a body_n second_o concern_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o word_n sacrament_n xi_o pag._n 14._o 14._o xi_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v always_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n but_o sometime_o to_o be_v use_v to_o signify_v only_o the_o external_a sign_n or_o symbol_n sometime_o only_o the_o res_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la or_o the_o thing_n contain_v under_o they_o which_o be_v the_o more_o principal_a part_n thereof_o this_o indeed_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o new_a divinity_n i_o always_o think_v hitherto_o that_o when_o we_o talk_v of_o a_o sacrament_n proper_o so_o call_v we_o have_v mean_v a_o outward_a and_o visible_a sign_n of_o a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o that_o this_o
particular_a sacrament_n have_v be_v a_o whole_a compose_v of_o the_o external_n species_n whatever_o they_o be_v as_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o inward_a part_n or_o thing_n signify_v thus_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o catechism_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n instruct_v we_o first_o for_o the_o name_n it_o tell_v we_o 92._o catech._n ad_fw-la parach_n part_n 2._o de_fw-fr sacram._n n._n iii._o &_o v._n p._n 92._o that_o the_o latin_a doctor_n have_v think_v that_o certain_a sign_n subject_v to_o the_o sense_n which_o declare_v and_o as_o it_o be_v set_v before_o the_o eye_n the_o grace_n which_o they_o effect_v may_v fit_o be_v call_v sacrament_n and_o for_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o thus_o it_o define_v a_o sacrament_n from_o s._n austin_n it_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n or_o more_o full_o as_o i_o before_o say_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o a_o invisible_a grace_n institute_v for_o our_o justification_n so_o that_o neither_o then_o symbol_n alone_o nor_o the_o invisible_a part_n or_o grace_n alone_o can_v with_o any_o manner_n of_o propriety_n be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n but_o the_o sign_n refer_v to_o the_o grace_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o symbol_n institute_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o confer_v of_o it_o this_o therefore_o can_v with_o no_o good_a reason_n be_v call_v a_o catholic_n assertion_n be_v neither_o general_n nor_o true_a but_o however_o since_o he_o seem_v content_a to_o allow_v it_o to_o be_v a_o impropriety_n of_o speech_n and_o that_o i_o confess_v the_o 144._o the_o catec_fw-la conc._n trid._n part_n 2._o de_fw-fr euch._n euch._n viij_o nota_fw-la p._n 144._o catechism_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v lead_v he_o into_o it_o let_v we_o see_v what_o use_n he_o can_v make_v of_o it_o xi_o it_o pag._n 15._o 15._o xi_o and_o as_o protestant_n much_a press_n so_o catholic_n roman_a catholic_n willing_o acknowledge_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o this_o word_n be_v take_v for_o the_o symbol_n and_o the_o worship_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n a_o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o but_o then_o they_o who_o tell_v we_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v if_o they_o will_v speak_v rational_o must_v mean_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o other_o of_o these_o but_o the_o host_n that_o be_v as_o card._n pallavicini_n expound_v it_o the_o whole_a of_o which_o christ_n body_n be_v a_o part_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o sacrament_n in_o which_o they_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v present_a and_o for_o that_o cause_n adore_v it_o as_o the_o cardinal_n again_o argue_v 92._o argue_v see_v above_o pag._n 91_o 92._o that_o to_o make_v a_o whole_a adorable_a it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o one_o part_n be_v so_o and_o therefore_o since_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v adorable_a the_o sacrament_n for_o its_o sake_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v it_o be_v therefore_o a_o mere_a shift_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v i._n e._n christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o will_v the_o remark_n of_o our_o author_n help_v we_o out_o that_o though_o the_o chapter_n indeed_o call_v it_o the_o sacrament_n in_o which_o be_v christ_n body_n xiii_o pag._n 16_o 16_o xiii_o yet_o the_o canon_n speak_v more_o precise_o and_o call_v it_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n unless_o he_o suppose_v the_o council_n to_o have_v be_v infallible_a in_o the_o canon_n only_o and_o not_o in_o the_o chapter_n as_o some_o have_v think_v that_o they_o may_v be_v out_o in_o their_o proof_n but_o can_v be_v in_o their_o conclusion_n but_o however_o since_o he_o so_o much_o desire_v it_o for_o my_o part_n i_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o allow_v they_o this_o too_o for_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a by_o any_o mean_n to_o see_v they_o sensible_a of_o their_o error_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o it_o be_v esteem_v only_o a_o private_a opinion_n this_o not_o a_o catholic_n assertion_n three_o catholic_n he_o mean_v the_o papist_n still_o xvii_o p._n 21._o 21._o xvii_o ground_n their_o adoration_n not_o upon_o transubstantiation_n as_o if_o transubstantiation_n defeat_v adoration_n be_v so_o too_o but_o on_o a_o real_a presence_n with_o the_o symbol_n which_o in_o general_n be_v agree_v on_o by_o the_o lutheran_n together_o with_o they_o by_o which_o assertion_n if_o he_o mean_v only_o to_o make_v this_o discovery_n that_o christ_n real_a presence_n together_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n as_o good_a a_o ground_n for_o adoration_n as_o if_o he_o be_v there_o only_o with_o the_o species_n of_o the_o bread_n the_o substance_n be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v to_o it_o but_o if_o he_o will_v hereby_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o whether_o christ_n be_v adore_v as_o suppose_v here_o by_o the_o lutheran_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o as_o imagine_v there_o by_o the_o papist_n i_o must_v then_o deny_v his_o assertion_n and_o desire_v he_o to_o keep_v home_o to_o his_o own_o manner_n of_o real_a presence_n and_o which_o i_o shall_v present_o convince_v he_o will_v leave_v they_o in_o a_o much_o worse_a condition_n than_o their_o neighbour_n who_o he_o will_v draw_v into_o the_o same_o snare_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o conclude_v four_o xviii_o p._n 22._o 22._o xviii_o that_o suppose_v transubstantiation_n to_o be_v a_o error_n yet_o if_o the_o tenent_n of_o corporal_n or_o real_a presence_n as_o hold_v by_o the_o lutheran_n or_o other_o be_v true_a catholic_n he_o will_v say_v papist_n plead_v their_o adoration_n be_v no_o way_n frustrate_v but_o still_o warrantable_a i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o adoration_n of_o those_o among_o the_o lutheran_n who_o worship_n christ_n in_o this_o sacrament_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o real_a presence_n in_o or_o with_o the_o bread_n though_o it_o be_v a_o error_n yet_o be_v infinite_o more_o excusable_a than_o they_o who_o suppose_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o because_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v that_o i_o speak_v this_o out_o of_o any_o prejudice_n against_o they_o i_o will_v here_o offer_v my_o reason_n for_o it_o one_a they_o that_o adore_v christ_n as_o real_o present_a together_o with_o the_o bread_n do_v no_o violence_n to_o their_o sense_n they_o confess_v that_o what_o they_o see_v and_o taste_v and_o feel_v and_o smell_v be_v real_o bread_n and_o wine_n whilst_o the_o papist_n in_o deny_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o remain_v or_o that_o what_o he_o see_v and_o feel_v and_o smell_n and_o taste_v be_v what_o all_o the_o world_n perceive_v and_o know_v it_o be_v contradict_v his_o sense_n and_o in_o they_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o to_o direct_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o the_o search_n of_o truth_n and_o by_o consequence_n err_v against_o infinite_o great_a mean_n of_o conviction_n and_o so_o be_v more_o inexcusable_a than_o the_o other_o 2_o they_o who_o worship_n christ_n as_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v together_o with_o the_o bread_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v erroneous_a indeed_o in_o this_o that_o they_o take_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v where_o real_o it_o be_v not_o but_o yet_o their_o object_n be_v undoubted_o right_a and_o in_o that_o they_o be_v not_o mistake_v but_o now_o for_o the_o papist_n he_o adore_v it_o be_v confess_v what_o he_o think_v to_o be_v christ_n body_n and_o will_v not_o otherwise_o adore_v it_o but_o yet_o still_o it_o be_v the_o host_n that_o he_o adore_v the_o substance_n that_o be_v under_o those_o species_n which_o he_o see_v and_o which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n but_o mere_a substance_n of_o bread_n the_o case_n be_v vast_o alter_v between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o him._n the_o former_a adore_v christ_n only_o as_o in_o a_o place_n where_o he_o be_v not_o the_o latter_a not_o only_o do_v this_o but_o moreover_o adore_v a_o substance_n for_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o a_o mere_a creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n mounseur_fw-fr daille_n therefore_o may_v right_o enough_o say_v of_o a_o lutheran_n that_o his_o adoration_n be_v mistake_v nineteeen_o p._n 23._o 23._o nineteeen_o not_o in_o this_o that_o it_o address_v itself_o to_o a_o object_n not_o adorable_a but_o only_o that_o by_o error_n it_o seek_v and_o think_v to_o enjoy_v it_o in_o a_o place_n where_o it_o be_v not_o and_o so_o become_v only_o vain_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o yet_o our_o author_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o reason_n from_o thence_o to_o pretend_v that_o a_o papist_n who_o terminate_v his_o adoration_n
a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o the_o two_o great_a point_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o two_o discourse_n late_o print_v at_o oxford_n on_o this_o subject_a to_o which_o be_v prefix_v a_o large_a historical_a preface_n relate_v to_o the_o same_o argument_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o s._n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxxvii_o the_o preface_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v a_o subject_n that_o have_v be_v both_o so_o frequent_o insist_v upon_o and_o so_o full_o explain_v in_o our_o own_o and_o other_o language_n that_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v a_o very_a needless_a undertake_n for_o any_o one_o to_o trouble_v the_o world_n with_o any_o far_a reflection_n upon_o it_o for_o not_o to_o mention_v now_o those_o eminent_a man_n who_o have_v heretofore_o labour_v in_o this_o work_n nor_o to_o run_v beyond_o the_o point_n that_o be_v here_o design_v to_o be_v examine_v what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o evident_o to_o show_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o pretend_a substantial_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n than_o have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o late_a excellent_a discourse_n against_o transubstantiation_n it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a little_a time_n since_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n have_v be_v show_v not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o novel_a invention_n contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o antiquity_n but_o the_o danger_n of_o it_o evident_o demonstrate_v notwithstanding_o whatever_o pretence_n can_v be_v make_v of_o a_o good_a intention_n to_o excuse_v they_o from_o the_o charge_n and_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n who_o continue_v the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o both_o these_o not_o only_o still_o remain_v unanswered_a but_o if_o we_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o judge_n either_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n or_o by_o our_o adversary_n silence_n be_v true_o and_o indeed_o unanswerable_a it_o be_v not_o therefore_o out_o of_o any_o the_o least_o opinion_n that_o any_o thing_n more_o need_n be_v say_v to_o confirm_v our_o cause_n much_o less_o that_o i_o esteem_v myself_o able_a to_o undertake_v it_o with_o the_o same_o success_n that_o those_o other_o champion_n of_o our_o faith_n have_v do_v it_o that_o i_o venture_v these_o discourse_n to_o a_o public_a view_n but_o since_o our_o adversary_n still_o continue_v without_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n to_o cry_v up_o their_o great_a diana_n no_o less_o than_o if_o she_o have_v never_o at_o all_o be_v show_v to_o be_v but_o a_o idol_n i_o think_v it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o revive_v our_o instance_n against_o it_o and_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o appear_v less_o solicitous_a by_o a_o frequent_a repetition_n of_o our_o reason_n to_o keep_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n than_o other_o be_v by_o a_o continual_a insist_v upon_o their_o so_o often_o baffle_v sophistry_n to_o lead_v they_o into_o error_n it_o be_v a_o ingenious_a apology_n that_o seneca_n once_o make_v for_o his_o often_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v but_o inculcate_v over_o and_o over_o the_o same_o counsel_n to_o those_o that_o over_o and_o over_o commit_v the_o same_o fault_n and_o i_o remember_v a_o ancient_a father_n have_v leave_v it_o as_o his_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v useful_a for_o the_o same_o truth_n to_o be_v vindicate_v by_o many_o because_o that_o one_o man_n write_n may_v possible_o chance_v to_o come_v where_o the_o other_o do_v not_o and_o what_o be_v less_o full_o or_o clear_o explain_v by_o one_o may_v be_v supply_v and_o enlarge_v by_o the_o other_o and_o a_o great_a than_o either_o of_o these_o s._n paul_n have_v at_o once_o leave_v we_o both_o a_o example_n and_o a_o warrant_n for_o this_o solicitude_n phil._n 3.1_o to_o write_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o you_o to_o i_o say_v he_o be_v not_o grievous_a but_o for_o you_o it_o be_v safe_a indeed_o i_o think_v if_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o a_o excuse_n for_o this_o undertake_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v rather_o to_o apologise_v for_o a_o far_o great_a absurdity_n which_o we_o all_o commit_v in_o write_v at_o all_o against_o those_o man_n who_o in_o these_o dispute_n concern_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n have_v most_o evident_o show_v that_o to_o be_v true_a of_o christian_n which_o be_v once_o say_v of_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n that_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o so_o absurd_a which_o some_o man_n will_v not_o adventure_v to_o maintain_v in_o most_o of_o our_o other_o controversy_n with_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o show_v they_o to_o be_v erroneous_a in_o this_o they_o be_v extravagant_a and_o as_o a_o eminent_a pen_n have_v very_o just_o express_v it_o 2._o discourse_v against_o transubstantiation_n pag._n 2._o the_o business_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o a_o controversy_n of_o scripture_n against_o scripture_n or_o of_o reason_n against_o reason_n but_o of_o downright_a impudence_n against_o the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o sense_n and_o reason_n of_o mankind_n the_o truth_n be_v as_o the_o same_o person_n go_v on_o ibid._n ibid._n it_o be_v a_o most_o self-evident_a falsehood_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doctrine_n or_o proposition_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v of_o itself_o more_o evident_o true_a than_o transubstantiation_n be_v evident_o false_a and_o if_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o must_v be_v dispute_v and_o this_o evidence_n that_o what_o we_o see_v and_o handle_v and_o taste_v to_o be_v bread_n be_v bread_n and_o not_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n and_o what_o we_o see_v and_o taste_v to_o be_v wine_n be_v wine_n and_o not_o blood_n may_v not_o pass_v for_o sufficient_a without_o any_o far_a proof_n i_o can_v discern_v why_o any_o man_n that_o have_v but_o confidence_n enough_o to_o do_v so_o may_v not_o deny_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v what_o all_o the_o world_n see_v it_o be_v or_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v what_o all_o the_o world_n see_v it_o be_v not_o and_o this_o without_o all_o possibility_n of_o be_v further_o confute_v but_o yet_o since_o it_o have_v please_v god_n so_o far_o to_o give_v over_o some_o man_n to_o a_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n as_o not_o only_o serious_o to_o believe_v this_o themselves_o but_o also_o rash_o to_o damn_v all_o those_o that_o can_v believe_v it_o with_o they_o we_o ought_v as_o well_o for_o the_o security_n of_o those_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o abandon_v their_o own_o sense_n and_o reason_n in_o compliance_n only_o with_o other_o who_o in_o this_o matter_n profess_v to_o have_v lay_v aside_o they_o as_o in_o charity_n to_o such_o delude_a person_n as_o be_v unhappy_o lead_v away_o with_o these_o error_n to_o show_v they_o their_o unreasonableness_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o christianity_n be_v a_o wise_a and_o rational_a religion_n that_o it_o be_v a_o mistake_a piety_n to_o suppose_v that_o man_n ought_v to_o believe_v contradiction_n or_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v ever_o the_o more_o perfect_a because_o the_o object_n of_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o our_o sense_n ought_v to_o be_v trust_v in_o judge_v aright_o of_o their_o proper_a object_n that_o to_o deny_v this_o be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o great_a external_a evidence_n we_o have_v for_o our_o religion_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o their_o judgement_n or_o if_o that_o will_v be_v more_o considerable_a be_v to_o take_v away_o all_o the_o ground_n that_o even_o themselves_o can_v pretend_v to_o wherefore_o they_o shall_v disbelieve_v they_o in_o favour_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o this_o i_o persuade_v myself_o i_o have_v in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n sufficient_o show_v and_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o repeat_v it_o again_o here_o for_o the_o word_n themselves_o which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o great_a error_n i_o have_v take_v that_o method_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o the_o most_o proper_a to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o and_o as_o far_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o enquiry_n will_v permit_v have_v endeavour_v to_o render_v it_o plain_a and_o intelligible_a even_o to_o the_o mean_a capacity_n and_o i_o have_v some_o cause_n to_o hope_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a will_v not_o be_v dissatisfy_v with_o the_o design_n what_o ever_o they_o may_v be_v with_o the_o performance_n it_o be_v from_o such_o that_o i_o have_v take_v the_o great_a part_n of_o my_o reflection_n and_o in_o which_o i_o pretend_v to_o little_a of_o my_o own_o beside_o the_o care_n of_o put_v together_o here_o what_o i_o have_v observe_v scatter_v up_o and_o down_o in_o part_n elsewhere_o it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o fit_a at_o this_o time_n to_o insist_v upon_o this_o manner_n of_o argue_v in_o that_o a_o late_a
qu'il_fw-fr répondit_fw-fr qu'_fw-fr il_fw-fr la_fw-fr tenoit_fw-fr pour_fw-fr un_fw-fr monster_n et_fw-fr comme_fw-fr ils_fw-fr luy_fw-fr demanderent_fw-la comment_v do_v il_fw-fr en_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr écrit_fw-fr si_fw-fr amplement_n &_o si_fw-fr doctement_fw-fr il_fw-fr repliqua_fw-la qu'il_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr deployé_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr address_n de_fw-fr son_fw-fr esprit_fw-fr po●_n colourer_n cet_fw-fr abus_fw-la &_o pour_fw-fr le_fw-fr rendre_fw-fr plausibile_fw-la &_o qu'il_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr fait_fw-fr comrre_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr qui_fw-fr font_n tous_fw-fr leur_fw-fr effort_n pour_fw-fr defendre_fw-fr une_fw-fr manvaise_fw-fr cause_n your_o highness_n say_v he_o may_v believe_v i_o if_o you_o please_v but_o i_o can_v assure_v you_o with_o all_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n that_o if_o the_o late_a cardinal_n du_fw-fr perron_n have_v convince_v you_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o transubstantiation_n he_o have_v convince_v you_o of_o that_o of_o which_o he_o can_v never_o convince_v himself_o nor_o do_v he_o ever_o believe_v it_o for_o i_o have_v be_v inform_v by_o certain_a person_n of_o honour_n and_o that_o be_v in_o all_o respect_v worthy_a of_o belief_n and_o who_o have_v it_o from_o those_o that_o be_v eye_n witness_n that_o some_o friend_n of_o that_o illustrious_a and_o learned_a cardinal_n who_o go_v to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o lie_v languish_v upon_o his_o bed_n and_o ill_o of_o that_o distemper_n of_o which_o he_o die_v desire_v he_o to_o tell_v they_o free_o what_o he_o think_v of_o transubstantiation_n to_o who_o he_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o monster_n and_o when_o they_o far_o ask_v he_o how_o then_o he_o have_v write_v so_o copious_o and_o learned_o about_o it_o he_o reply_v that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o utmost_a that_o his_o wit_n and_o part_n have_v enable_v he_o to_o color_n overdo_n this_o abuse_n and_o render_v it_o plausible_a but_o that_o he_o have_v do_v like_o those_o who_o employ_v all_o their_o force_n to_o defend_v a_o ill_a cause_n and_o thus_o far_a mounseur_fw-fr drelincourt_n i_o can_v to_o this_o add_v some_o far_a circumstance_n which_o i_o have_v learn_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o what_o be_v here_o say_v may_v suffice_v to_o show_v what_o the_o real_a opinion_n of_o this_o great_a cardinal_n after_o all_o his_o voluminous_a write_n as_o to_o this_o doctrine_n be_v unless_o some_o future_a obligation_n shall_v perhaps_o engage_v i_o to_o enter_v on_o a_o more_o particular_a account_n of_o it_o to_o these_o two_o great_a instance_n of_o another_o nation_n i_o will_v beg_v leave_n to_o subjoin_v a_o three_o of_o our_o own_o country_n father_n barnes_n the_o benedictine_n pl._n catholico-romano-pacificus_a oxon._n 1680._o pag._n 90._o assertio_fw-la transubstantiationis_fw-la s●u_fw-la mutationis_fw-la substantialis_fw-la panis_fw-la licet_fw-la sit_fw-la opinio_fw-la communior_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la et_fw-la scripturae_fw-la &_o patres_fw-la docentes_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sufficienter_fw-la expo●●_n possant_fw-la de_fw-fr admirand●_n &_o supernaturali_fw-la mutatione_n panis_n per_fw-la praesentiam_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la ei_fw-la accedentem_fw-la sine_fw-la substantialis_fw-la panis_n desitione_n et._n p._n 95._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d illam_fw-la in_o augustissimo_fw-la sacramento_n factam_fw-la plerique_fw-la grave_n &_o antiqui_fw-la scriptoresita_n explicant_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la fiat_fw-la per_fw-la desitionem_fw-la substantiae_fw-la panis_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la receptionem_fw-la supernaturalem_fw-la substantiae_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o substantiam_fw-la panis_n v._o pl._n who_o in_o his_o pacific_n discourse_n of_o most_o of_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n express_o declare_v that_o the_o assertion_n of_o transubstantiation_n or_o of_o the_o substantial_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n though_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o more_o common_a opinion_n be_v yet_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v sufficient_o expound_v of_o that_o admirable_a and_o supernatural_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n add_v to_o it_o without_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n itself_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n how_o little_a this_o monk_n think_v transubstantiation_n a_o article_n of_o faith._n but_o a_o great_a than_o he_o and_o who_o not_o only_o do_v not_o esteem_v it_o necessary_a for_o other_o to_o receive_v it_o but_o clear_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o himself_o sne_fw-la illustriss_n atque_fw-la reverend_a p●de_n marea_n parisiens_fw-la archiep._n dissertationes_fw-la posthumae_fw-la de_fw-fr sanctissimo_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la sacramento_n dissertatio_fw-la in_fw-la sne_fw-la be_v the_o illustrious_a mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr marca_n late_a archbishop_n of_o paris_n and_o well_o know_v to_o the_o world_n for_o his_o great_a learning_n and_o eminence_n his_o treatise_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v publish_v with_o authority_n by_o one_o of_o his_o near_a relation_n the_o abbé_fw-fr faget_n at_o paris_n 1668._o with_o some_o other_o little_a tract_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o archbishop_n own_o hand_n in_o the_o close_a of_o that_o treatise_n he_o thus_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n edition_n opinion_n species_n p●nis_fw-la est_fw-la essentiâ_fw-la &_o naturâ_fw-la distincta_fw-la à_fw-la corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la sibi_fw-la adjuncto_fw-la licet_fw-la ratio_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la id_fw-la exigat_fw-la ut_fw-la substantia_fw-la panis_n interior_a conversa_fw-la suerit_fw-la in_o illud_fw-la corpus_fw-la modo_fw-la quodam_fw-la qui_fw-la omnem_fw-la cogitationem_fw-la exsuperat_fw-la caeterum_fw-la mutatio_fw-la illa_fw-la non_fw-la officit_fw-la quin_fw-la panis_n qui_fw-la videtur_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la accidentia_fw-la svam_fw-la naturam_fw-la extantiam_fw-la &_o essentiam_fw-la sive_fw-la substantiam_fw-la retineat_fw-la &_o naturae_fw-la verae_fw-la proprietates_fw-la inter_fw-la quas_fw-la est_fw-la alendi_fw-la corporis_fw-la humani_fw-la facultas_fw-la vnde_fw-la consequitur_fw-la rectè_fw-la observatum_fw-la à_fw-la gelasio_n sacramenta_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la divinam_fw-la rem_fw-la esse_fw-la quia_fw-la panis_n &_o vinum_fw-la in_o divinam_fw-la transeunt_fw-la substantiam_fw-la s._n spiritu_fw-la persiciente_a nempe_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la spiritale_fw-it sed_fw-la ex_fw-la alia_fw-la parte_fw-la non_fw-la desinere_fw-la substantiam_fw-la &_o naturam_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n sed_fw-la ea_fw-la permanere_fw-la in_o suae_fw-la proprietate_fw-la naturae_fw-la quoniam_fw-la scil_n postquam_fw-la panis_n in_fw-la divinam_fw-la substantiam_fw-la transivit_fw-la non_fw-fr interiit_fw-la integra_fw-la panis_n natura_fw-la quam_fw-la substantiam_fw-la quoque_fw-la vocat_fw-la nec_fw-la desivit_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o suae_fw-la proprietate_fw-la naturae_fw-la permansit_fw-la ad_fw-la alendum_fw-la corpus_fw-la idonea_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la praecipuum_fw-la confecti_fw-la panis_fw-la munus_fw-la note_v that_o in_o the_o paris_n edition_n they_o have_v put_v in_o those_o word_n print_v in_o the_o black_a letter_n id_fw-la est_fw-la accidentia_fw-la and_o omit_v those_o that_o i_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v set_v in_o capital_n but_o in_o the_o original_a leaf_n which_o i_o have_v leave_v in_o s._n martin_n library_n to_o be_v see_v by_o any_o that_o please_v and_o which_o be_v cut_v out_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o passage_n it_o stand_v as_o i_o have_v say_v and_o as_o it_o be_v true_o represent_v in_o the_o holland_n edition_n the_o species_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v in_o its_o essence_n and_o nature_n distinct_a from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n adjoin_v to_o it_o although_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o eucharist_n require_v that_o the_o inward_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v convert_v into_o that_o body_n after_o a_o manner_n that_o exceed_v all_o imagination_n but_o yet_o this_o change_n hinder_v not_o but_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v see_v still_o retain_v its_o own_o nature_n be_v and_o essence_n or_o substance_n together_o with_o the_o propriety_n of_o its_o true_a nature_n among_o which_o one_o be_v the_o faculty_n of_o nourish_v our_o body_n etc._n etc._n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v right_o observe_v by_o gelasius_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o divine_a thing_n because_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v perfect_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n pass_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n viz._n the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v but_o continue_v still_o in_o the_o propriety_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o here_o i_o suppose_v any_o one_o who_o read_v this_o passage_n alone_o of_o this_o treatise_n may_v without_o the_o help_n of_o eucharistie_n of_o baluze_fw-fr 2_o lettre_n à_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr le_fw-fr presid_n marca_n s'il_fw-fr est_fw-fr uray_fw-fr ce_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'ay_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr peine_fw-fr à_fw-fr croire_fw-fr que_fw-fr feu_fw-fr monsigneur_n ait_fw-fr composé_fw-fr les_fw-fr traittez_fw-fr que_fw-fr m._n faget_n a_o fait_fw-fr imprimer_n sous_fw-fr son_fw-fr nom_fw-fr dont_fw-fr il_fw-fr se_fw-fr vaunt_v dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr preface_n &_o
in_o the_o same_o design_n to_o worship_n god_n as_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n of_o one_o family_n be_v not_o the_o lamb_n of_o another_o although_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v to_o accomplish_v the_o same_o mystery_n thus_o for_o instance_n on_o corpus_n christi-day_n the_o sacrament_n of_o s._n german_a d'_fw-fr auxerrois_fw-fr where_o the_o perpetual_a vicar_n consecrate_v the_o host_n and_o mounseur_fw-fr the_o dean_n the_o first_o curé_n carry_v it_o the_o procession_n under_o a_o rich_a canopy_n crown_v with_o flower_n this_o host_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n which_o be_v carry_v after_o another_o manner_n viz._n the_o image_n of_o that_o apostle_n make_v of_o silver_n gilt_n fall_v from_o his_o horse_n at_o his_o conversion_n under_o the_o sacrament_n of_o jesus_n christ_n hang_v up_o in_o ray_n of_o gold_n and_o carry_v under_o the_o cover_n of_o another_o stately_a canopy_n and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o other_o church_n as_o for_o the_o story_n of_o several_a host_n that_o have_v be_v stab_v with_o penknife_n and_o have_v bleed_v they_o serve_v only_o to_o bring_v in_o some_o superstition_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o never_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v material_a blood_n in_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n because_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o a_o mystery_n of_o faith._n for_o what_o be_v say_v of_o a_o infant_n that_o be_v see_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o the_o host_n and_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n sit_v upon_o a_o sepulshre_n instead_o of_o the_o same_o host_n be_v mere_a fable_n suggest_v by_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n it_o be_v further_a report_v of_o certain_a robber_n that_o carry_v away_o the_o vessel_n in_o which_o the_o host_n be_v keep_v they_o have_v throw_v the_o host_n itself_o upon_o the_o ground_n and_o trample_v it_o under_o foot_n sometime_o have_v cast_v it_o into_o nasty_a place_n without_o any_o fear_n that_o it_o shall_v avenge_v itself_o this_o be_v a_o most_o horrible_a thought_n and_o of_o which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o open_v our_o mouth_n but_o only_o to_o detest_v so_o dreadful_a a_o profanation_n the_o same_o must_v be_v say_v of_o those_o host_n which_o have_v be_v cast_v up_o as_o soon_o as_o receive_v whether_o by_o sick_a person_n or_o sometime_o by_o debauch_a priest_n disorder_v with_o the_o last_o night_n intemperance_n both_o which_o have_v sometime_o happen_v not_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o those_o other_o terrible_a inconvenience_n remark_v in_o the_o caution_n concern_v the_o mass_n all_o which_o show_v that_o man_n have_v carry_v thing_n too_o far_o without_o any_o warrant_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god._n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o so_o easy_a as_o some_o imagine_v to_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n out_o of_o the_o use_n against_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o opposer_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o truth_n be_v terrible_o obscure_v and_o few_o give_v themselves_o the_o trouble_n to_o clear_v it_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o seem_v that_o among_o the_o many_o writer_n of_o the_o age_n there_o be_v some_o who_o make_v it_o their_o whole_a business_n to_o hide_v it_o and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o find_v it_o out_o as_o if_o they_o desire_v never_o to_o be_v wise_a than_o they_o be_v the_o vanity_n of_o lie_v flatter_v they_o but_o too_o much_o in_o all_o the_o humane_a passion_n which_o sway_v they_o there_o be_v nevertheless_o some_o faithful_a disciple_n and_o apostolic_a soul_n who_o be_v exempt_v to_o obey_v god_n by_o his_o grace_n and_o to_o give_v glory_n to_o his_o name_n it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o his_o departure_n that_o david_n say_v every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n psal_n 115.2_o and_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n 3.4_o to_o show_v that_o god_n only_o be_v true_a add_v immediate_o after_o from_o psalm_n 4._o psalm_n li._n 4._o 50.6_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v when_o thou_o speak_v and_o be_v clear_a when_o thou_o judge_v such_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr marolles_n as_o to_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v too_o much_o trespass_n upon_o the_o reader_n be_v patience_n to_o insist_v thus_o particular_o upon_o other_o of_o lesser_a note_n the_o author_n of_o the_o late_a historical_a treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n have_v full_o show_v not_o only_o his_o own_o opinion_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o church_n against_o it_o and_o though_o i_o dare_v not_o say_v the_o same_o of_o whoever_o he_o be_v that_o set_v forth_o the_o 102._o the_o il_fw-fr nous_fw-fr suffit_fw-fr que_fw-fr j.c._n qui_fw-fr est_fw-fr la_fw-fr verité_fw-fr meme_fw-fr nous_fw-fr ait_fw-fr assuré_fw-fr que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr sacrament_n est_fw-fr veritablement_n fon_n corpse_n &_o qu'il_fw-fr ait_fw-fr ordonne_v the_o manger_n sa_fw-fr chair_n &_o boire_fw-fr son_fw-fr sang_fw-fr car_fw-fr il_fw-fr faut_fw-fr absolument_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr y_fw-fr soit_fw-fr puis_fw-fr q'il_fw-fr il_fw-fr nous_fw-fr ordonne_v de_fw-fr l'y_fw-fr manger_n sans_o s'embarasser_n l'esprit_fw-fr de_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr maniere_n &_o comment_n cela_fw-fr se_fw-fr fait_fw-fr 2._o part_n p._n 102._o moyens_fw-fr sur_n &_o honneste_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n himself_o yet_o this_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o do_v not_o desire_v any_o one_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o believe_v it_o or_o indeed_o be_v encourage_v to_o search_v too_o nice_o into_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a and_o eat_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n whether_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr meaux_n believe_v this_o doctrine_n or_o not_o his_o authority_n be_v become_v of_o so_o little_a importance_n that_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o examine_v yet_o the_o first_o french_a transubstantiation_n french_a advertissement_fw-fr n._n 14._o p._n 22._o mr._n b._n speak_v of_o that_o edition_n il_fw-fr n'y_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr en_fw-fr aucun_fw-fr lieu_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'article_n ni_fw-fr le_fw-fr term_n de_fw-fr transubstantiation_n ni_fw-fr cette_fw-fr proposition_n que_fw-fr le_fw-fr pain_n &_o le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr sont_fw-fr changez_fw-fr au_fw-fr corpse_n &_o au_fw-fr sang_fw-fr de_fw-fr j.c._n dans_fw-fr la_fw-fr derniere_n edition_n apres_fw-fr ces_fw-fr mots_fw-fr le_fw-fr propre_fw-fr corpse_n &_o le_fw-fr prope_a ●ing_fw-mi de_fw-fr j.c._n il_fw-fr a_fw-fr ajoute_fw-fr ausquelles_fw-fr le_fw-fr pain_n &_o le_fw-fr vin_fw-fr sont_fw-fr changez_fw-fr cest_fw-fr ce_fw-fr qu'on_n appelle_fw-fr transubstantiation_n answer_v to_o his_o exposition_n observe_v that_o in_o the_o suppress_v edition_n of_o it_o he_o have_v not_o at_o all_o mention_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n those_o word_n in_o the_o close_a of_o that_o paragraph_n which_o we_o now_o read_v viz._n that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o proper_a body_n and_o proper_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v call_v transubstantiation_n be_v put_v in_o style_n in_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr meaux_n letter_n of_o his_o alteration_n vind._n p._n 13._o &_o 117._o pour_v l'ordre_fw-fr &_o pour_fw-fr une_fw-fr plus_fw-fr grande_fw-fr netteté_fw-fr du_fw-fr discourse_n &_o du_fw-fr style_n for_o the_o great_a neatness_n of_o the_o discourse_n and_o style_n since_o but_o now_o for_o his_o vindicator_n it_o be_v evident_a if_o he_o understand_v his_o own_o meaning_n that_o he_o be_v not_o very_o well_o instruct_v about_o it_o 83._o it_o vindication_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n expos_n pag._n 83._o it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o that_o our_o dispute_n with_o protestant_n be_v not_o about_o the_o manner_n how_o jesus_n christ_n be_v present_a but_o only_o about_o the_o thing_n itself_o whether_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o present_a after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n under_o the_o species_n or_o appearance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o so_o present_a in_o which_o word_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o exclude_v total_o the_o manner_n how_o jesus_n christ_n become_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o his_o expression_n be_v from_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o may_v well_o have_v be_v range_v among_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o new_a popery_n 1686._o but_o if_o he_o design_v not_o to_o exclude_v the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n but_o only_o the_o mode_n of_o the_o conversion_n as_o he_o seem_v by_o some_o other_o of_o his_o word_n to_o insinuate_v viz._n whether_o it_o be_v by_o adduction_n etc._n etc._n from_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o have_v deny_v the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o their_o church_n have_v absolute_o define_v to_o be_v by_o that_o wonderful_a and_o singular_a conversion_n so_o apt_o call_v transubstantiation_n but_o more_o precise_o to_o have_v explain_v his_o school-nicety_n and_o
all_o their_o sense_n tell_v they_o be_v but_o a_o bit_n of_o bread_n to_o the_o hindrance_n of_o who_o conversion_n so_o many_o thing_n may_v interpose_v that_o be_v their_o doctrine_n otherwise_o as_o infallible_a as_o we_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v false_a it_o will_v yet_o be_v a_o hundred_o to_o one_o that_o there_o be_v no_o consecration_n in_o a_o word_n how_o they_o can_v worship_v that_o which_o they_o can_v never_o be_v secure_a be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n nay_o when_o as_o the_o example_n i_o have_v before_o give_v show_n they_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o fear_v whether_o even_o the_o priest_n himself_o who_o say_v the_o mass_n do_v indeed_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v any_o power_n or_o by_o consequence_n can_v have_v any_o intention_n to_o turn_v it_o into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o consideration_n will_v show_v three_o how_o little_a security_n their_o other_o plea_n of_o concomitance_n which_o they_o so_o much_o insist_v upon_o to_o show_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o communicate_v only_o in_o one_o kind_n viz._n that_o they_o receive_v the_o blood_n in_o the_o body_n can_v give_v to_o the_o laity_n to_o satisfy_v their_o conscience_n that_o they_o ever_o partake_v of_o that_o bless_a sacrament_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v since_o whatever_o be_v pretend_v of_o christ_n body_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o can_v be_v none_o of_o his_o blood_n in_o a_o mere_a wafer_n and_o if_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o priest_n infidelity_n the_o host_n shall_v be_v indeed_o nothing_o else_o of_o which_o we_o have_v show_v they_o can_v never_o be_v sure_a neither_o can_v they_o ever_o know_v whether_o what_o they_o receive_v be_v upon_o their_o own_o principle_n a_o entire_a communion_n and_o then_o last_o for_o the_o main_a thing_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o if_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o there_o it_o can_v be_v true_o and_o proper_o offer_v nor_o any_o of_o those_o great_a benefit_n be_v derive_v to_o they_o from_o a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n which_o themselves_o declare_v can_v proceed_v only_o from_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o their_o bless_a lord_n it_o be_v i_o know_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o those_o who_o can_v believe_v transubstantiation_n to_o believe_v also_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hazard_n in_o all_o these_o great_a and_o apparent_a danger_n but_o yet_o in_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n man_n ought_v to_o desire_v to_o be_v well_o assure_v and_o not_o expose_v even_o to_o any_o possible_a defect_n sacramentum_fw-la de_fw-fr defectibus_fw-la cirea_fw-la missam_fw-la de_fw-fr defectu_fw-la panis_fw-la si_fw-mi panis_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la triticeus_fw-la vel_fw-la si_fw-la triticeus_fw-la sit_fw-la admixtus_fw-la granis_fw-la alterius_fw-la generis_fw-la in_o tantâ_fw-la quantitate_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la maneat_fw-la panis_fw-la triticeus_fw-la vel_fw-la sit_fw-la alioqui_fw-la corruptus_fw-la non_fw-la conficitur_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la si_fw-mi sit_fw-la confectus_fw-la de_fw-la aqud_fw-la rosaceâ_fw-la vel_fw-la alterius_fw-la distillationis_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la a_o conficiatur_fw-la et_fw-fr de_fw-fr defect_n vini_fw-la si_fw-mi vinum_fw-la sit_fw-la factum_fw-la penitus_fw-la acetum_fw-la vel_fw-la penitus_fw-la putridum_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-la uvis_fw-la acerbis_fw-la seu_fw-la non_fw-la maturis_fw-la expressiom_n vel_fw-la admixtum_fw-la tantum_fw-la aque_fw-la ut_fw-la vinum_fw-la sit_fw-la corruptum_fw-la non_fw-la consicitur_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la i_o do_v not_o now_o insist_v upon_o the_o common_a remark_n which_o yet_o be_v authorize_v by_o their_o own_o missal_n and_o may_v give_v just_a ground_n to_o their_o fear_n that_o if_o the_o wafer_n be_v not_o make_v of_o wheat_n but_o of_o some_o other_o corn_n there_o be_v then_o no_o consecration_n if_o it_o be_v mix_v not_o with_o common_a but_o distil_v water_n it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o it_o be_v consecrate_a if_o the_o wine_n be_v sour_a to_o such_o a_o certain_a degree_n that_o then_o it_o become_v incapable_a of_o be_v change_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n with_o many_o more_o of_o the_o like_a kind_n and_o which_o render_v it_o always_o uncertain_a to_o they_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o change_n make_v in_o the_o bless_a element_n or_o no_o 1._o no_o du_n moulin_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v mention_n one_o that_o in_o his_o time_n be_v burn_v at_o loudun_n for_o consecrate_v a_o host_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o devil_n thes_n sedann_n th._n 97._o n._n 10._o p._n 846._o vol._n 1._o the_o relation_n i_o have_v give_v be_v not_o of_o counterfeit_a jew_n and_o moor_n who_o to_o escape_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o inquisition_n have_v sometime_o become_v priest_n and_o administer_v all_o the_o sacrament_n for_o many_o year_n together_o without_o ever_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o administer_v true_o any_o one_o of_o they_o and_o of_o which_o i_o can_v give_v a_o eminent_a instance_n in_o a_o certain_a jew_n now_o live_v who_o for_o many_o year_n be_v not_o only_o a_o priest_n but_o a_o professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o spain_n and_o all_o the_o while_n in_o reality_n a_o mere_a jew_n as_o he_o be_v now_o the_o person_n here_o mention_v be_v man_n of_o undoubted_a reputation_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o singular_a esteem_n in_o their_o church_n and_o if_o these_o find_v the_o impossibility_n of_o transubstantiation_n so_o much_o great_a than_o either_o the_o pretend_a authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n certain_o they_o may_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o fear_v whether_o many_o other_o of_o their_o priest_n do_v not_o live_v in_o the_o same_o infidelity_n in_o which_o these_o have_v die_v and_o so_o expose_v they_o to_o all_o the_o hazard_n now_o mention_v and_o which_o be_v undeniable_o the_o consequence_n of_o such_o their_o unbelief_n but_o these_o be_v not_o the_o only_a danger_n i_o will_v desire_v those_o of_o that_o communion_n to_o reflect_v on_o upon_o this_o occasion_n another_o there_o be_v and_o of_o great_a consequence_n than_o any_o i_o have_v hitherto_o mention_v and_o which_o may_v perhaps_o extend_v not_o only_o to_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o it_o may_v be_v to_o the_o invalidating_a of_o most_o of_o their_o other_o sacrament_n 2._o sacrament_n eugenii_fw-la iu._n decret_a in_o act._n council_n florent_fw-la ann._n 1439._o council_n labb_n tom._n 13._o p._n 535._o council_n trident._n sess_n vii_o can._n 2._o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o to_o the_o validity_n of_o every_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o of_o that_o of_o order_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n three_o thing_n must_v concur_v a_o due_a matter_n a_o right_a form_n and_o the_o person_n of_o the_o minister_n confer_v the_o sacrament_n with_o a_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v where_o either_o of_o these_o be_v want_v the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o perform_v if_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n in_o confer_v the_o holy_a order_n of_o priesthood_n have_v not_o a_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v receive_v no_o priestly_a character_n of_o he_o nor_o by_o consequence_n have_v any_o power_n of_o consecrate_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n or_o of_o be_v hereafter_o advance_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n now_o the_o form_n of_o confer_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n they_o determine_v to_o be_v this_o 228._o this_o ibid._n pag._n 5●3_n catech._n council_n trid._n de_fw-fr sacr._n ord._n n._n xxii_o p._n 222._o item_n n._n l._n p._n 228._o the_o bishop_n deliver_v the_o cup_n with_o some_o wine_n and_o the_o paten_n with_o bread_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o person_n who_o he_o ordain_v say_v receive_v the_o power_n of_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o ceremony_n and_o word_n their_o catechism_n tell_v we_o he_o be_v constitute_v a_o interpreter_n and_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n which_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v the_o chief_a function_n of_o a_o priest_n so_o that_o then_o the_o intention_n necessary_a to_o the_o confer_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n be_v this_o to_o give_v a_o power_n to_o consecrate_v i._n e._n to_o transubstantiate_v the_o host_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o so_o offer_v it_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a if_o therefore_o any_o of_o their_o bishop_n for_o instance_n cardinal_n du_fw-fr perron_n or_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr marca_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o either_o the_o church_n or_o themselves_o as_o bishop_n of_o it_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o confer_v any_o such_o power_n they_o can_v not_o certain_o have_v any_o intention_n of_o do_v in_o this_o case_n what_o the_o church_n intend_v to_o do_v have_v no_o such_o intention_n the_o person_n who_o they_o pretend_v to_o ordain_v be_v no_o priest_n
church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o this_o point_n be_v pag._n 86_o our_o author_n exception_n against_o it_o answer_v pag._n 87_o ii_o what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o whether_o what_o this_o author_n have_v say_v in_o favour_n of_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v their_o practice_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n pag._n 91_o their_o doctrine_n state_v ib._n the_o defence_n of_o it_o unsufficient_a show_v in_o answer_n 1._o to_o his_o protestant-concessions_a pag._n 93_o 2._o to_o his_o catholic_n assertion_n first_o pag._n 96_o second_n pag._n 99_o three_o ib._n four_o pag._n 100_o five_o pag._n 102_o sixth_n pag._n 103_o seven_o pag._n 104_o eighth_n ib._n 3._o to_o the_o ground_n he_o offer_v of_o their_o belief_n pag._n 105_o the_o lutheran_n practise_v no_o apology_n for_o they_o pag._n 106_o ground_n first_o answer_v pag._n 108_o ground_n second_o answer_v pag._n 109_o ground_n three_o answer_v pag._n 113_o ground_n four_o answer_v pag._n 114_o ground_n five_o answer_v pag._n 115_o some_o argument_n propose_v upon_o their_o own_o principle_n against_o this_o adoration_n pag._n 117_o conclusion_n pag._n 125_o errata_fw-la pag._n xvii_o l._n 10._o four_o r._n six_o p._n xviii_o l._n 10._o in_o r._n on_o p._n xxii_o l._n 33._o r._n they_o be_v p._n xxiv_o l._n 5._o r._n that_o thou_o p._n 13._o mark_fw-mi hammond_n l._n 6._o p._n 129._o p._n 64._o mark_fw-mi casaubon_n ib._n l._n 19_o body_n be_v of_o christ_n p._n 76._o l._n 24._o deal_n which_o p._n 80._o l._n 15._o then_o that_o p._n 91._o l._n 27._o r._n this_o holy._n p._n 98._o l._n 16._o for_o then_o r._n the._n p._n 112._o l._n 18._o catholicâ_fw-la l._n 20._o ask_v a_o few_o lesser_a fault_n there_o be_v which_o the_o reader_n may_v please_v to_o correct_v a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n with_o particular_a reference_n to_o the_o two_o great_a point_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_z introduction_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o the_o general_n to_o understand_v the_o true_a design_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n we_o can_v i_o suppose_v take_v any_o better_a course_n than_o to_o consider_v first_o of_o all_o what_o account_v the_o sacred_a writer_n have_v leave_v we_o of_o the_o time_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o do_v of_o it_o now_o for_o this_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o same_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v have_v first_o eat_v the_o passover_n according_a to_o the_o law_n exod._n 12._o matt._n xxvi_o 20._o take_v bread_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o he_o break_v it_o xxvi_o it_o matt._n xxvi_o and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o me._n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o he_o take_v the_o cup_n when_o he_o have_v sup_v say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new-testament_n in_o my_o blood_n this_o do_v you_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o drink_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o such_o be_v the_o account_n which_o st._n paul_n give_v we_o of_o the_o original_a of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n nor_o do_v the_o evangelist_n dissent_v from_o it_o only_o that_o st._n matthew_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o cup_n add_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o matt._n xxvi_o 27._o to_o which_o st._n mark_n subjoin_v a_o particular_a observation_n and_o which_o ought_v not_o here_o to_o be_v pass_v by_o that_o they_o all_o drink_v of_o it_o mark_v fourteen_o 23._o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o design_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o institute_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v to_o abolish_v the_o jewish_a passover_n and_o to_o establish_v the_o memory_n of_o another_o and_o a_o much_o great_a deliverance_n than_o that_o of_o the_o first-born_a now_o to_o be_v wrought_v for_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o his_o death_n the_o bread_n which_o he_o break_v and_o the_o wine_n which_o he_o pour_v out_o be_v such_o clear_a type_n of_o his_o body_n to_o be_v break_v his_o blood_n to_o be_v shed_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o application_n and_o as_o god_n almighty_a under_o the_o law_n design_v that_o other_o memorial_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n now_o change_v into_o a_o so_o much_o better_a and_o more_o excellent_a remembrance_n to_o continue_v as_o long_o as_o the_o law_n its_o self_n stand_v in_o force_n so_o this_o bless_a eucharist_n establish_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o must_v no_o doubt_n have_v be_v intend_v by_o he_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o his_o church_n as_o long_o as_o the_o covenant_n seal_v with_o that_o blood_n which_o it_o exhibit_v stand_v and_o therefore_o that_o since_o that_o shall_v never_o be_v abolish_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o also_o will_v remain_v our_o duty_n and_o be_v our_o perpetual_a obligation_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n this_o be_v the_o import_n of_o our_o saviour_n addition_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o be_v by_o st._n paul_n more_o full_o express_v in_o those_o word_n which_o he_o immediate_o subjoin_v to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o institution_n before_o recite_v 1_o cor._n xi_o 26._o for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o do_v show_v i.e._n in_o the_o jewish_a phrase_n set_v forth_o commemorate_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o his_o come_n and_o that_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n now_o establish_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o jewish_a passover_n may_v be_v both_o the_o better_o understand_v and_o the_o easy_a receive_v by_o they_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n much_o to_o be_v remark_v for_o the_o right_n explain_v of_o it_o how_o exact_o he_o accommodate_v all_o the_o notion_n and_o idea_n of_o that_o ancient_a ceremony_n to_o this_o new_a institution_n i._o in_o that_o paschal_n supper_n the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n take_v bread_n and_o present_v it_o before_o they_o instead_o of_o the_o usual_a benediction_n of_o the_o bread_n he_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o they_o say_v etc._n say_v see_v dr._n hammond_n on_o mat._n xxvi_o lit_fw-fr e._n casaubon_n in_o mat._n xxvi_o 26._o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n which_o our_o father_n eat_v in_o egypt_n in_o this_o sacred_a feast_n our_o saviour_n in_o like_a manner_n take_v bread_n the_o very_a loaf_n which_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_a to_o take_v for_o the_o ceremony_n before_o mention_v break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o allude_v thereby_o not_o only_o to_o their_o ceremony_n in_o his_o action_n but_o even_o to_o their_o very_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o his_o expression_n to_o the_o passover_n before_o they_o which_o in_o their_o language_n they_o constant_o call_v etc._n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vid._n buxtorf_n vindic._n contr_n capel_n p._n 14._o hammond_n in_o mat._n xxvi_o l._n e._n etc._n etc._n the_o body_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb._n ii_o in_o that_o ancient_a feast_n the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n in_o like_a manner_n after_o supper_n take_v the_o cup_n and_o have_v give_v thanks_o give_v it_o to_o they_o say_v 16._o say_v allix_fw-la preparat_fw-la a_o la_fw-fr sainte_n cene._n cap._n 2._o pag._n 16._o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o grape_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n our_o bless_a lord_n in_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n take_v the_o cup_n he_o bless_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new-testament_n in_o my_o blood_n his_o action_n be_v again_o the_o very_a same_o with_o they_o and_o for_o his_o expression_n it_o be_v that_o which_o moses_n use_v when_o he_o ratify_v the_o ancient_a covenant_n between_o god_n and_o the_o jew_n exod._n xxiv_o 8._o compare_v with_o hebr._n ix_o 20._o say_v this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o testament_n iii_o in_o that_o ancient_a feast_n after_o all_o this_o be_v finish_v they_o be_v wont_a to_o sing_v a_o 260._o a_o dr._n lightfoot_v heb_fw-mi &_o talmud_n observation_n mat._n xxvi_o ver_fw-la 26_o 27._o t._n 2._o p._n 258_o 260._o hymn_n the_o psalm_n yet_o extant_a from_o the_o cxiii_o to_o the_o cxix_o thence_o call_v by_o they_o the_o great_a haleluia_o in_o this_o holy_a supper_n our_o saviour_n and_o his_o disciple_n be_v express_o record_v to_o have_v do_v the_o like_a and_o very_o probable_o in_o the_o selfsame_a word_n see_v matt._n xxvi_o 30._o mark_v fourteen_o 26._o in_o a_o word_n last_o iv_o that_o ancient_a passover_n the_o jew_n be_v command_v to_o keep_v
in_o memory_n of_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n the_o bitter_a herb_n be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d remembrance_n of_o the_o bitter_a servitude_n they_o undergo_v there_o exod._n i_o 14._o the_o red_a wine_n be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d memorial_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n slay_v by_o pharaoh_n and_o for_o this_o they_o be_v express_o command_v by_o moses_n exod._n xiii_o 8._o to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d show_n i.e._n to_o annunciate_v or_o tell_v forth_o to_o their_o child_n what_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v for_o they_o and_o so_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n christ_n express_o institute_n it_o for_o the_o same_o end_n 〈◊〉_d end_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v this_o say_v he_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o which_o st._n paul_n thus_o explain_v 1_o cor._n xi_o 26._o for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o do_v or_o rather_o do_v you_o 〈◊〉_d you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d show_v the_o very_a word_n before_o use_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o his_o come_n so_o clear_a a_o allusion_n do_v every_o part_n of_o this_o sacrament_n bear_v to_o that_o ancient_a solemnity_n and_o we_o must_v be_v more_o blind_a than_o the_o jew_n themselves_o not_o to_o see_v that_o as_o that_o other_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n from_o the_o practice_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o 1684._o the_o see_v dr._n hammonds_n practical_a catechism_n lib._n 6._o pag._n 115._o oper._n fol._n lond._n 1684._o jewish_a doctor_n who_o receive_v their_o proselyte_n by_o the_o like_a wash_n so_o be_v this_o holy_a eucharist_n establish_v upon_o the_o analogy_n which_o we_o have_v see_v to_o the_o paschal_n supper_n who_o place_n it_o supply_v and_o who_o ceremony_n it_o so_o exact_o retain_v that_o it_o seem_v only_o to_o have_v heighten_v the_o design_n and_o change_v the_o application_n to_o a_o more_o excellent_a remembrance_n i_o know_v not_o how_o far_o it_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o confirm_v this_o analogy_n that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a tradition_n among_o the_o 498._o the_o vid._n fagium_fw-la in_o annotat_fw-la in_o exod._n twelve_o 13._o where_o he_o render_v their_o word_n thus_o et_fw-fr in_o eadem_fw-la die_v viz._n xv_o mensis_fw-la nisan_fw-la sc_fw-la martii_fw-la redimendus_fw-la est_fw-la israel_n in_fw-la diebus_fw-la messiae_n vid._n vol._n 1._o critic_n m._n p_o 498._o jew_n of_o old_a that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v and_o work_v out_o their_o deliverance_n the_o very_a same_o night_n in_o which_o god_n have_v bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n the_o night_n of_o the_o paschal_n solemnity_n but_o certain_o considerable_a it_o be_v that_o as_o god_n under_o the_o law_n the_o same_o night_n in_o which_o he_o deliver_v they_o institute_v the_o passover_n to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a memorial_n of_o it_o throughout_o their_o generation_n so_o here_o our_o saviour_n institute_v his_o communion_n not_o only_o in_o the_o same_o night_n in_o which_o he_o deliver_v we_o but_o immediate_o after_o have_v eat_v his_o last_o passover_n to_o show_v we_o that_o what_o that_o solemnity_n have_v hitherto_o be_v to_o the_o jew_n this_o sacrament_n shall_v from_o henceforth_o be_v to_o we_o and_o that_o we_o by_o this_o ceremony_n shall_v commemorate_v we_o as_o they_o by_o that_o other_o have_v be_v command_v to_o do_v their_o deliverance_n this_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o direct_v we_o to_o by_o so_o often_o call_v our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o express_a term_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n joh._n i._n 29._o st._n peter_n speak_v of_o our_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o obtain_v by_o corruptible_a thing_n such_o as_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n 1_o pet._n i_o 18._o and_o st._n paul_n so_o clear_o direct_v we_o to_o this_o allusion_n that_o no_o possible_a doubt_n can_v remain_v of_o it_o christ_n say_v he_o our_o passover_n be_v sacrifice_v for_o we_o theresore_n let_v we_o keep_v the_o feast_n 2_o cor._n 1._o v._n 7._o and_o now_o after_o so_o many_o argument_n for_o this_o application_n as_o be_v join_v together_o i_o think_v i_o may_v almost_o call_v a_o demonstration_n of_o it_o i_o suppose_v i_o may_v without_o scruple_n lie_v down_o this_o foundation_n both_o for_o the_o unfolding_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o the_o general_n and_o for_o the_o examination_n of_o those_o two_o great_a point_n i_o be_o here_o to_o consider_v in_o particular_a viz._n that_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o institution_n address_v himself_o to_o jew_n and_o speak_v in_o the_o direct_a form_n of_o the_o paschal_n phrase_n and_o in_o a_o ceremony_n which_o it_o be_v thus_o evident_a he_o design_v to_o introduce_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o that_o solemnity_n the_o best_a method_n we_o can_v take_v for_o explain_v both_o the_o word_n and_o intent_n of_o this_o communion_n will_v be_v to_o examine_v what_o such_o man_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v must_v necessary_o have_v conceive_v to_o be_v his_o meaning_n but_o especial_o on_o a_o occasion_n wherein_o it_o neither_o become_v he_o to_o be_v obscure_a and_o the_o apostle_n silence_n not_o one_o of_o they_o demand_v any_o explication_n of_o his_o word_n as_o at_o other_o time_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v clear_o show_v that_o he_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o be_v understand_v this_o only_o postulate_v be_v grant_v which_o i_o think_v i_o have_v so_o good_a reason_n to_o expect_v i_o shall_v now_o go_v on_o to_o examine_v by_o it_o the_o first_o great_a point_n propose_v to_o be_v consider_v viz._n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o that_o one_a as_o establish_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 2_o as_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n i._n chap._n i._o of_o transubstantiation_n or_o the_o real_a presence_n establish_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n transubstantiation_n be_v define_v by_o the_o 2._o the_o council_n trid._n sess_n 13._o cap._n 4._o &_o can._n 2._o council_n of_o trent_n to_o the_o a_o wonderful_a conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n into_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n the_o species_n or_o accident_n only_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o which_o wonderful_a conversion_n because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v not_o very_o liberal_a in_o any_o of_o her_o instruction_n have_v take_v 45._o take_v catechismus_fw-la ad_fw-la parochos_fw-la par._n ii_o cap._n de_fw-fr euch._n sacr._n n._n 39.41_o 45._o particular_a care_n that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v too_o much_o explain_v to_o the_o people_n as_o well_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n so_o absurd_a that_o even_o their_o credulity_n can_v hardly_o be_v able_a to_o digest_v it_o it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o if_o from_o the_o very_a word_n of_o their_o own_o catechism_n we_o examine_v a_o little_a far_o into_o it_o now_o three_o thing_n there_o be_v which_o they_o tell_v we_o must_v be_v consider_v in_o it_o i._n primum_fw-la i._n catech._n ibid._n n._n twenty-five_o sect._n primum_fw-la that_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o now_o sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o sacrament_n now_o by_o the_o true_a body_n they_o mean_v not_o only_o his_o human_a body_n and_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o it_o as_o bones_o sinew_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o sacrament_n continetur_fw-la sacrament_n ibid._n n._n xxxi_o sect._n totus_fw-la christus_fw-la ut_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o homo_fw-la in_o eucharistia_n continetur_fw-la but_o the_o entire_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n so_o that_o the_o eucharistical_a element_n be_v change_v into_o our_o saviour_n as_o to_o both_o his_o substance_n and_o the_o consequence_n of_o both_o his_o blood_n soul_n and_o divinity_n its_o self_n all_o which_o be_v real_o present_a in_o this_o sacrament_n sint_fw-la sacrament_n ibid._n n._n xxxiii_o sect._n per_fw-la concomitantiam_fw-la in_o euch._n quae_fw-la sint_fw-la the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o consecration_n the_o rest_n by_o concomitance_n with_o the_o body_n again_o when_o it_o be_v say_v etc._n say_v ibid._n n._n thirty-nine_o sect._n conuersio_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o euchar._n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o his_o whole_a body_n and_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o whole_a blood_n this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v
so_o understand_v as_o if_o the_o bread_n do_v not_o contain_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o his_o blood_n as_o well_o as_o of_o his_o body_n and_o so_o the_o wine_n the_o whole_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n as_o well_o as_o of_o his_o blood_n etc._n blood_n ibid._n n._n xxxv_o sect._n christus_fw-la totus_fw-la in_o qualibet_fw-la particula_fw-la &_o n._n xlii_o etc._n etc._n see_v christ_n be_v entire_a in_o each_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nay_o in_o every_o the_o least_o crumb_n or_o drop_v of_o either_o part_n ii_o the_o secundum_fw-la the_o ibid._n n._n twenty-five_o sect._n secundum_fw-la second_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v that_o not_o any_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v though_o nothing_o may_v seem_v more_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n than_o this_o in_o which_o they_o be_v certain_o in_o the_o right_n iii_o euch._n iii_o ibid._n n._n twenty-five_o sect._n tertium_fw-la &_o n._n xliv_o sect._n accid_n sine_fw-la subjecto_fw-la con_v in_o euch._n that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o either_o our_o eye_n see_v as_o the_o colour_n form_n etc._n etc._n or_o our_o other_o sense_n perceive_v as_o the_o taste_n touch_v smell_v all_o these_o be_v in_o no_o subject_n but_o exist_v by_o themselves_o after_o a_o wonderful_a manner_n and_o which_o can_v be_v explain_v for_o the_o rest_n the_o conversion_n its_o self_n natione_fw-la self_n ibid._n n._n xxxvii_o sect._n primo_fw-la natione_fw-la it_o be_v very_o difficult_a to_o be_v comprehend_v how_o christ_n body_n which_o before_o consecration_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v now_o come_v to_o be_v there_o since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o change_v not_o its_o place_n but_o be_v still_o all_o the_o while_n in_o heaven_n nor_o be_v it_o make_v present_a there_o by_o creation_n etc._n creation_n ibid._n n._n thirty-nine_o sect._n conuersio_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o euch._n etc._n etc._n nor_o by_o any_o other_o change_n for_o it_o be_v neither_o increase_v nor_o diminish_v but_o remain_v whole_a in_o its_o substance_n as_o before_o euchar._n before_o ibid._n n._n xliii_o quonam_fw-la modo_fw-la christus_fw-la existat_fw-la in_o euchar._n christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n local_o for_o he_o have_v no_o quantity_n there_o be_v neither_o great_a nor_o little._n inquirendum_fw-la little._n ibid._n n._n xli_o sect._n de_fw-fr transubstant_fw-fr curiosius_fw-la non_fw-la inquirendum_fw-la in_o a_o word_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o inquire_v too_o curious_o how_o this_o change_n can_v be_v make_v for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v comprehend_v see_v neither_o in_o any_o natural_a change_n nor_o indeed_o in_o the_o whole_a creation_n be_v there_o any_o example_n of_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o such_o be_v the_o account_n which_o themselves_o give_v of_o this_o mystery_n from_o all_o which_o we_o may_v in_o short_a conclude_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n before_o we_o to_o be_v this_o that_o we_o do_v not_o dispute_v at_o all_o about_o christ_n real_a presence_n which_o after_o a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a manner_n we_o acknowledge_v in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n as_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o show_v nor_o by_o consequence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n word_n which_o we_o undoubted_o believe_v but_o only_o about_o this_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n viz._n whether_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o very_a natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n themselves_o do_v no_o long_o remain_v but_o that_o under_o the_o appearance_n of_o they_o be_v contain_v that_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n with_o his_o soul_n and_o divinity_n which_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n though_o extend_v in_o all_o its_o part_n in_o heaven_n be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o the_o sacrament_n without_o any_o extension_n neither_o great_a nor_o small_a come_v thither_o neither_o by_o generation_n nor_o by_o creation_n nor_o by_o any_o local_a motion_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o continue_v still_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o very_a same_o instant_n that_o it_o exist_v whole_a and_o entire_a in_o every_o consecrate_a host_n or_o chalice_n nay_o more_o be_v whole_a and_o entire_a not_o only_o in_o the_o whole_a host_n or_o the_o whole_a chalice_n but_o in_o every_o the_o least_o crumb_n of_o the_o host_n and_o every_o the_o least_o drop_n of_o the_o chalice_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o here_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v a_o very_a needless_a indeed_o a_o extravagant_a undertake_n to_o prove_v that_o those_o element_n which_o so_o many_o of_o our_o sense_n tell_v we_o continue_v after_o their_o consecration_n the_o very_a same_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v their_o natural_a substance_n that_o they_o be_v before_o be_v in_o reality_n the_o very_a same_o that_o what_o all_o the_o world_n see_v and_o feel_v and_o smell_v and_o taste_n to_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o very_a natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o a_o body_n actual_o before_o existent_n have_v it_o not_o enter_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n to_o join_v in_o the_o maintain_n of_o a_o paradox_n which_o have_v nothing_o to_o defend_v it_o but_o that_o fond_a presumption_n they_o have_v certain_o do_v well_o to_o take_v up_o that_o they_o can_v possible_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n and_o without_o which_o it_o will_v be_v very_o difficult_a for_o they_o to_o persuade_v any_o sober_a man_n that_o they_o be_v here_o in_o the_o right_n to_o show_v that_o those_o word_n which_o they_o tell_v we_o work_v all_o this_o miracle_n and_o be_v the_o only_a reason_n that_o engage_v they_o to_o maintain_v so_o many_o absurdity_n as_o be_v confess_o the_o unavoidable_a consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n have_v no_o such_o force_n nor_o interpretation_n as_o they_o pretend_v i_o must_v desire_v it_o may_v be_v remember_v what_o i_o before_o remark_v that_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v establish_v by_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o jewish_a passever_v and_o upon_o the_o very_a word_n and_o ceremony_n of_o it_o so_o that_o if_o in_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v typical_a the_o feast_n the_o custom_n the_o expression_n mere_o allusive_a to_o something_o that_o have_v be_v do_v before_o and_o of_o which_o this_o sacred_a ceremony_n be_v the_o memorial_n we_o ought_v in_o all_o reason_n to_o conclude_v that_o both_o our_o saviour_n must_v have_v design_v and_o his_o apostle_n understand_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n to_o have_v be_v the_o same_o too_o now_o as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o passover_n we_o have_v already_o see_v that_o it_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n as_o a_o remembrance_n of_o his_o delivery_n of_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n when_o he_o slay_v all_o the_o first-born_a of_o the_o egyptian_n exod._n twelve_o the_o lamb_n which_o they_o eat_v every_o year_n in_o this_o feast_n be_v a_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n and_o type_n of_o that_o first_o lamb_n which_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o night_n of_o their_o deliverance_n and_o who_o blood_n sprinkle_v upon_o the_o post_n of_o their_o door_n have_v preserve_v their_o forefather_n from_o the_o destroy_a angel_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o do_v they_o any_o mischief_n the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n which_o they_o break_v and_o of_o which_o they_o say_v perhaps_o in_o the_o very_a 24._o very_a vid._n cameron_n annot._n in_o matt._n xxvi_o 26._o in_o illa_fw-la verba_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d inter_fw-la critic_n pag._n 780._o l._n 24._o same_o manner_n that_o christ_n do_v of_o the_o very_a same_o loaf_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n which_o our_o father_n eat_v in_o egypt_n they_o esteem_v a_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o that_o unleavened_a bread_n which_o their_o forefather_n so_o many_o age_n before_o have_v eat_v there_o and_o upon_o that_o account_n call_v it_o 503._o it_o allix_fw-la serm._n pag._n 503._o the_o memorial_n of_o their_o delivery_n out_o of_o egypt_n fol._n egypt_n hammond_n pract._n catechism_n lib_n vi_o pag._n ed._n fol._n the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o they_o bless_v and_o of_o which_o they_o all_o drink_v in_o this_o feast_n they_o do_v it_o at_o once_o in_o memory_n both_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n slay_v by_o pharaoh_n and_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v sprinkle_v upon_o their_o door_n preserve_v their_o own_o from_o be_v shed_v with_o that_o of_o the_o egyptian_n now_o all_o these_o idea_n with_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v so_o long_o be_v acquaint_v can_v not_o but_o present_o suggest_v to_o they_o the_o same_o design_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n that_o when_o
he_o as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o feast_n take_v the_o loaf_n bless_a and_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o they_o and_o bid_v they_o in_o like_a manner_n henceforward_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o he_o certain_o design_v that_o by_o this_o ceremony_n which_o hitherto_o they_o have_v use_v in_o memory_n of_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n they_o shall_v now_o continue_v the_o memory_n of_o their_o bless_a lord_n and_o of_o that_o deliverance_n which_o he_o be_v about_o to_o work_v for_o they_o that_o as_o by_o call_v the_o lamb_n in_o that_o feast_n the_o body_n of_o the_o passover_n they_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v the_o remembrance_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o command_v the_o destroy_a angel_n to_o pass_v over_o their_o house_n when_o he_o slay_v their_o enemy_n the_o memorial_n of_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v kill_v for_o this_o purpose_n in_o egypt_n so_o christ_n call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n nay_o his_o body_n break_v for_o they_o can_v certain_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o type_n the_o memorial_n of_o his_o body_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v not_o but_o be_v now_o just_a ready_a to_o be_v give_v for_o their_o redemption_n this_o be_v so_o natural_a a_o reflection_n and_o in_o one_o part_n at_o least_o of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n so_o necessary_a too_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o explain_v it_o otherwise_o this_o cup_n say_v our_o saviour_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n that_o be_v as_o a._n as_o see_v exod._n xxiv_o 8._o heb._n ix_o ●0_n and_o this_o allusion_n be_v apply_v by_o s._n peter_n 1_o ep._n i_o 2._o vid._n hammond_n annot._n in_o loc_fw-la lit_fw-fr a._n moses_n have_v before_o say_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o very_a same_o phrase_n the_o seal_n the_o ratification_n of_o it_o now_o if_o those_o word_n be_v take_v literal_o then_o one_a it_o be_v the_o cup_n that_o be_v transubstantiate_v not_o the_o wine_n 2_o it_o be_v change_v not_o into_o christ_n blood_n as_o they_o pretend_v but_o into_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v confess_o absurd_a and_o impossible_a it_o must_v in_o all_o reason_n follow_v that_o the_o apostle_n understand_v our_o saviour_n alike_o in_o both_o his_o expression_n and_o that_o by_o consequence_n we_o ought_v to_o interpret_v those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o of_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o type_n or_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n as_o we_o must_v that_o of_o the_o cup_n that_o it_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n i._n e._n the_o sign_n or_o seal_v of_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o natural_o do_v all_o these_o notion_n direct_v we_o to_o a_o figurative_a interpretation_n of_o his_o word_n the_o whole_a design_n of_o this_o institution_n and_o all_o the_o part_n and_o ceremony_n of_o it_o be_v plain_o typical_a in_o remembrance_n as_o christ_n himself_o have_v tell_v we_o of_o him._n but_o now_o if_o we_o go_v on_o more_o particular_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o expression_n its_o self_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o that_o will_v yet_o more_o clear_o confirm_v this_o interpretation_n it_o have_v before_o be_v observe_v that_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v use_v by_o he_o instead_o of_o that_o other_o expression_n of_o the_o master_n in_o the_o paschal_n feast_n when_o in_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n he_o take_v the_o very_a same_o bread_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o those_o who_o be_v at_o the_o table_n with_o he_o say_v this_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n which_o our_o father_n eat_v in_o egypt_n and_o can_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v more_o plain_a than_o that_o as_o never_o any_o jew_n yet_o imagine_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o they_o thus_o take_v every_o year_n be_v by_o that_o say_n of_o the_o master_n of_o their_o feast_n change_v into_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o that_o bread_n which_o their_o forefather_n have_v so_o many_o age_n before_o consume_v in_o egypt_n in_o the_o night_n of_o their_o deliverance_n but_o be_v thus_o break_v and_o give_v to_o they_o become_v a_o type_n a_o figure_n a_o memorial_n of_o it_o so_o neither_o can_v those_o to_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n now_o speak_v and_o who_o as_o be_v jew_n have_v so_o long_o be_v use_v to_o this_o phrase_n ever_o imagine_v that_o the_o piece_n of_o that_o loaf_n which_o he_o break_v and_o give_v they_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o become_v thereupon_o the_o very_a body_n of_o that_o saviour_n from_o who_o hand_n they_o receive_v it_o and_o who_o do_v not_o sure_a with_o one_o member_n of_o his_o body_n give_v away_o his_o whole_a body_n from_o himself_o to_o they_o but_o only_o design_v that_o by_o this_o ceremony_n they_o shall_v remember_v he_o and_o his_o body_n break_v for_o they_o as_o by_o the_o same_o they_o have_v hitherto_o remember_v the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n which_o their_o father_n eat_v in_o egypt_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o omit_v it_o because_o it_o very_o much_o confirm_v the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n that_o what_o i_o have_v here_o say_v of_o this_o analogy_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n to_o the_o jewish_a passover_n be_v not_o the_o original_a remark_n of_o any_o protestant_n or_o indeed_o of_o any_o other_o christian_n differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o point_n but_o be_v object_v to_o they_o long_o before_o the_o reformation_n by_o the_o 74._o the_o vid._n apud_fw-la author_n fortalitii_fw-la fidei_fw-la lib._n 4._o consid_fw-la 6._o impo_n 10._o those_o who_o have_v not_o this_o book_n may_v find_v the_o quotation_n at_o large_a in_o the_o late_a edition_n of_o joan._n parisiensis_fw-la in_o praefat._n pag._n 73_o 74._o jew_n themselves_o to_o show_v that_o in_o their_o literal_a interpretation_n of_o these_o word_n they_o have_v manifest_o depart_v from_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o advance_v a_o notion_n in_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o his_o apostle_n or_o any_o other_o acquaint_v as_o they_o be_v with_o the_o paschal_n form_n ever_o to_o have_v understand_v he_o and_o if_o 1664._o if_o epistol_n xxiii_o ad_fw-la bonifac_o vol._n 2._o pag._n 29._o oper._n ed._n lugd._n 1664._o st._n augustine_n who_o i_o suppose_v will_v not_o be_v think_v a_o heretic_n by_o either_o party_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o speak_v for_o the_o christian_n he_o tell_v we_o we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o phrase_n this_o be_v my_o body_n just_o say_v he_o as_o when_o in_o ordinary_a conversation_n we_o be_v wont_v to_o say_v this_o be_v christmas_n or_o good-friday_n or_o easter-day_n not_o that_o this_o be_v the_o very_a day_n on_o which_o christ_n be_v bear_v or_o suffer_v or_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o the_o return_n or_o remembrance_n of_o that_o day_n on_o which_o christ_n be_v bear_v or_o suffer_v or_o rise_v again_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o consider_v with_o what_o confidence_n our_o new_a missionary_n produce_v these_o word_n on_o all_o occasion_n and_o thereby_o show_v we_o how_o fond_a they_o will_v be_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o how_o willing_o they_o will_v make_v it_o their_o guide_n in_o controversy_n do_v it_o but_o ever_o so_o little_a favour_n their_o cause_n can_v any_o thing_n say_v they_o be_v more_o express_v this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v it_o possible_a for_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v more_o clear_a and_o positive_a and_o indeed_o be_v all_o the_o expression_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v take_v in_o their_o literal_a meaning_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o those_o word_n may_v as_o evident_o prove_v bread_n to_o be_v christ_n body_n as_o those_o other_o in_o st._n john_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n argue_v a_o contrary_a transubstantiation_n of_o christ_n body_n into_o bread_n john_n vi_fw-la 48_o 51._o or_o those_o more_o usual_a instance_n i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n i_o be_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sheep_n that_o rock_n be_v christ_n prove_v a_o great_a many_o transubstantiation_n more_o viz._n of_o our_o saviour_n into_o a_o vine_n a_o door_n and_o a_o rock_n but_o now_o if_o for_o all_o this_o plainness_n and_o positiveness_n in_o these_o expression_n they_o themselves_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a to_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o christ_n be_v indeed_o turn_v into_o all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o the_o like_a thing_n they_o may_v please_v to_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o say_v the_o same_o of_o this_o before_o we_o it_o be_v neither_o less_o impossible_a nor_o less_o unreasonable_a to_o suppose_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v
all_o metaphor_n only_o just_a two_o or_o three_o word_n for_o their_o purpose_n literal_a but_o that_o which_o raise_v our_o wonder_n to_o the_o high_a pitch_n be_v that_o the_o very_a fifty_o first_o verse_n its_o self_n on_o which_o they_o find_v their_o argument_n be_v two_o three_o of_o it_o figure_n and_o only_o otherwise_o in_o one_o clause_n to_o serve_v their_o hypothesis_n i_o be_o say_v our_o saviour_n the_o live_a bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n this_o be_v figurative_a if_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o that_o be_v they_o say_v by_o a_o spiritual_a eat_v by_o faith_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world._n this_o only_a must_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o proper_a manducation_n of_o a_o real_a eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o this_o be_v a_o arbitrary_a way_n of_o explain_v indeed_o and_o become_v the_o character_n of_o a_o church_n who_o dictate_v be_v to_o be_v receive_v not_o examine_v and_o may_v therefore_o pass_v well_o enough_o among_o those_o with_o who_o the_o suppose_a infallibility_n of_o their_o guide_n be_v think_v a_o sufficient_a dispensation_n for_o their_o own_o private_a consideration_n but_o for_o we_o who_o can_v see_v no_o reason_n for_o this_o sudden_a change_n of_o our_o saviour_n discourse_n nay_o think_v that_o the_o connexion_n of_o that_o last_o clause_n with_o the_o forego_n be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o they_o all_o keep_v the_o same_o character_n and_o be_v therefore_o not_o a_o little_a scandalize_v at_o so_o capernaitical_a a_o comment_n as_o indeed_o who_o can_v bear_v it_o v._o 60._o they_o will_v please_v to_o excuse_v we_o if_o we_o take_v our_o saviour_n interpretation_n to_o be_v at_o least_o of_o as_o good_a a_o authority_n as_o it_o be_v much_o more_o reasonable_a than_o they_o v._o 62._o do_v this_o say_v he_o offend_v you_o do_v my_o say_n that_o you_o must_v eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n scandalize_v you_o mistake_v not_o my_o design_n i_o mean_v not_o any_o carnal_a eat_n of_o i_o that_o indeed_o may_v just_o move_v your_o horror_n it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o they_o be_v life_n he_o that_o desire_v a_o full_a account_n of_o this_o chapter_n may_v please_v to_o recur_v to_o the_o late_a excellent_a 1686._o excellent_a a_o paraphrase_n with_o note_n and_o a_o preface_n upon_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o saint_n john_n lond._n 1686._o paraphrase_n set_v out_o on_o purpose_n to_o explain_v it_o and_o which_o will_v be_v abundant_o sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o reasonableness_n of_o that_o interpretation_n which_o we_o give_v of_o it_o i_o shall_v only_o add_v to_o close_v all_o that_o one_o remark_n which_o 16._o which_o de_fw-fr doctrine_n christian_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o saint_n augustine_n have_v leave_v we_o concern_v it_o and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o in_o that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o rule_n which_o he_o lay_v down_o for_o the_o right_a interpret_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o illustrate_v with_o this_o particular_a example_n if_o say_v he_o the_o say_n be_v preceptive_a either_o forbid_v a_o wicked_a action_n or_o command_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a it_o be_v no_o figurative_a say_n but_o if_o it_o seem_v to_o command_v any_o villainy_n or_o wickedness_n or_o forbid_v what_o be_v profitable_a and_o good_a it_o be_v figurative_a this_o say_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o seem_v to_o command_v a_o villainous_a or_o wicked_a thing_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o figure_n enjoin_v we_o to_o communicate_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o lay_v it_o up_o in_o dear_a and_o profitable_a remembrance_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v and_o wound_v for_o our_o sake_n and_o now_o have_v thus_o clear_o i_o persuade_v myself_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o those_o ground_n on_o which_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o substantial_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v establish_v i_o shall_v but_o very_o little_o insist_v on_o any_o other_o argument_n against_o it_o only_o in_o a_o word_n to_o demonstrate_v that_o all_o manner_n of_o proof_n fail_v they_o in_o this_o great_a error_n i_o will_v in_o the_o close_a here_o subjoin_v two_o or_o three_o short_a consideration_n more_o to_o show_v this_o doctrine_n opposite_a not_o only_o to_o holy_a scripture_n as_o we_o have_v see_v but_o also_o 1._o to_o the_o best_a and_o pure_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o to_o the_o right_a reason_n and_o 3._o to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o all_o mankind_n i._o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o best_a and_o pure_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n now_o to_o show_v this_o i_o shall_v not_o heap_v together_o a_o multitude_n of_o quotation_n out_o of_o those_o father_n through_o who_o hand_n this_o tradition_n must_v have_v past_a he_o that_o desire_v such_o a_o account_n may_v find_v it_o full_o do_v by_o one_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o a_o little_a 1687._o little_a a_o treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n by_o one_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n print_a for_o rich._n chiswell_n 1687._o treatise_n just_a now_o publish_v in_o our_o own_o language_n i_o will_v rather_o take_v a_o method_n that_o seem_v to_o i_o less_o liable_a to_o any_o just_a exception_n and_o that_o be_v to_o lay_v down_o some_o general_a remark_n of_o undoubted_a truth_n and_o who_o consequence_n will_v be_v as_o evident_a as_o their_o certainty_n be_v undeniable_a and_o i._o for_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v baptism_n such_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o never_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o note_v there_o be_v hardly_o any_o of_o these_o word_n which_o they_o have_v apply_v to_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o they_o have_v attribute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n but_o that_o in_o their_o popular_a discourse_n they_o have_v spare_v no_o word_n except_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n which_o not_o one_o of_o they_o ever_o use_v to_o set_v off_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n and_o i_o believe_v that_o be_v the_o sermon_n and_o devotional_a treatise_n of_o our_o own_o divine_n alone_o since_o the_o reformation_n search_v into_o one_o may_v find_v expression_n among_o they_o as_o much_o overstrained_a transubstantiation_n overstrained_a see_v treatise_n first_o of_o the_o adoration_n &c_n &c_n print_v late_o at_o oxford_n which_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o hold_v i_o know_v not_o what_o imaginary_a real_a presence_n on_o this_o account_n just_a as_o true_o as_o the_o father_n do_v transubstantiation_n and_o doubtless_o these_o will_v be_v as_o strong_a a_o argument_n to_o prove_v transubstantiation_n now_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o those_o to_o argue_v it_o to_o have_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o primitive_a age_n but_o now_o let_v we_o consult_v these_o man_n in_o their_o more_o exact_a composure_n when_o they_o come_v to_o teach_v not_o to_o declaim_v and_o we_o shall_v find_v they_o will_v then_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o element_n be_v for_o their_o two_o their_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o transcribe_v the_o particular_n here_o that_o have_v be_v so_o often_o and_o full_o allege_v most_o of_o these_o expression_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n late_o publish_v the_o rest_n may_v be_v see_v in_o blondel_n eclaircissement_n familiar_n the_o la_fw-fr controverse_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr eucharistie_n cap._n four_o seven_o viij_o claude_n rep._n au_o 2._o traittè_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr perpetuitè_fw-fr i._n part._n cap._n four_o v._o forbesius_n instructiones_fw-la historico-theolog_a lib._n xi_o cap._n ix_o x_o xi_o twelve_o xiii_o xv_o larrogue_n histoire_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr eucharistie_n liv_o 2._o cap._n two_o substance_n what_o they_o be_v before_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o they_o retain_v the_o true_a property_n of_o their_o nature_n to_o nourish_v and_o feed_v the_o body_n that_o they_o be_v thing_n inanimate_a and_o void_a of_o sense_n that_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n they_o be_v image_n figure_n sign_n symbol_n memorial_n type_n and_o antitype_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o in_o their_o use_n and_o benefit_n they_o be_v indeed_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o every_o saithful_a receiver_n but_o in_o a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a manner_n as_o we_o confess_v that_o in_o
propriety_n of_o speech_n the_o wicked_a receive_v not_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n although_o they_o do_v outward_o press_v with_o their_o tooth_n the_o holy_a element_n but_o rather_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o their_o damnation_n ii_o second_o for_o our_o saviour_n word_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o work_v this_o great_a change_n it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n that_o the_o greek_a father_n do_v not_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v word_n of_o consecration_n afterward_o this_o arcudius_n himself_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v of_o some_o of_o the_o latter_a greek_n viz._n that_o they_o take_v these_o word_n only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d historical_o see_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr concord_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 27._o and_o indeed_o all_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n of_o that_o church_n plain_o speak_v it_o however_o both_o he_o and_o goar_n endeavour_v to_o shift_v it_o off_o in_o which_o the_o prayer_n of_o consecration_n be_v after_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o distinct_a from_o it_o so_o in_o liturg._n s._n chrysostom_n edition_n goar_n pag._n 76._o n._n 130._o 132._o be_v pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n then_o pag._n 77._o numb_a 139._o the_o deacon_n bid_v the_o priest_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o thereupon_o thus_o consecrate_v it_o he_o first_o sign_v it_o three_o time_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o then_o thus_o pray_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o the_o cup_n afterward_o but_o to_o be_v the_o same_o in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n that_o the_o haggadah_fw-mi or_o history_n of_o the_o passover_n be_v in_o that_o ancient_a feast_n that_o be_v be_v read_v only_o as_o a_o account_n of_o the_o occasion_n and_o design_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n not_o to_o work_v any_o miracle_n in_o the_o consecration_n and_o for_o the_o etc._n the_o the_o same_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o african_a church_n who_o prayer_n now_o use_v see_v in_o ludolph_n histor_n l._n 3._o cap._n 5._o where_o be_v also_o the_o expression_n mention_v n._n 56._o hic_fw-la panis_n est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la etc._n etc._n african_a church_n they_o at_o this_o day_n expound_v they_o in_o this_o very_a sacrament_n after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o themselves_o confess_v to_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o transubstantiation_n viz._n this_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n iii_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v three_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a debate_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n whether_o christ_n glorify_a body_n have_v any_o blood_n in_o it_o or_o no_o now_o how_o those_o man_n can_v possible_o have_v question_v whether_o christ_n glorify_a body_n have_v any_o blood_n at_o all_o in_o it_o 1680._o see_v this_o whole_a matter_n deduce_v through_o the_o first_o age_n to_o st._n augustine_n who_o consentius_n consult_v about_o this_o very_a matter_n in_o a_o particular_a treatise_n write_v by_o mounseur_fw-fr allix_fw-la de_fw-fr sanguine_a christi_fw-la 8vo_fw-la paris_n 1680._o have_v they_o then_o believe_v the_o cup_n of_o eucharist_n to_o have_v be_v true_o and_o real_o change_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o glorify_a body_n as_o be_v now_o assert_v be_v what_o will_v hardly_o i_o believe_v be_v ever_o tell_v we_o iv_o we_o will_v add_v to_o this_o four_o their_o manner_n of_o oppose_v the_o heathenism_n of_o the_o world._n with_o what_o confidence_n can_v they_o have_v rally_v they_o as_o they_o do_v for_o worship_v god_n which_o their_o own_o hand_n have_v make_v etc._n so_o justin_n martyr_n apol._n 2._o tertul._n apolog._n cap._n 12._o arnobius_n lib._n 1._o minutius_n felix_n p._n 26._o octau._n julius_n firmicus_n pag._n 37._o edit_fw-la lugdunens_n 4to_fw-it 1652._o hieron_n lib._n 12._o in_o esai_n st._n augustinus_n in_o psal_n 80._o &_o in_o psal_n 113._o lactantius_n instit_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o chrysostom_n homil_n 57_o in_o genes_n etc._n etc._n that_o have_v neither_o voice_n nor_o life_n nor_o motion_n expose_v to_o age_n to_o corruption_n to_o dust_n to_o worm_n to_o fire_n and_o other_o accident_n that_o they_o adore_v god_n which_o their_o enemy_n can_v spoil_v they_o of_o thieves_z and_o robber_n take_v from_o they_o which_o have_v no_o power_n to_o defend_v themselves_o be_v force_v to_o be_v keep_v under_o lock_n and_o bolt_n to_o secure_v they_o for_o be_v not_o the_o eucharistical_a bread_n and_o wine_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o any_o of_o their_o idol_n be_v expose_v to_o the_o same_o raillery_n have_v their_o wafer_n if_o such_o than_o be_v their_o host_n any_o voice_n or_o life_n or_o motion_n do_v not_o their_o own_o hand_n form_v its_o substance_n and_o their_o mouth_n speak_v it_o into_o a_o god_n can_v it_o defend_v its_o self_n i_o do_v not_o say_v from_o public_a enemy_n or_o private_a robber_n but_o even_o from_o the_o very_a vermin_n the_o creep_a thing_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o shall_v we_o suppose_v the_o christian_n to_o have_v be_v so_o impudent_a as_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o to_o expose_v other_o for_o the_o same_o folly_n of_o which_o themselves_o be_v more_o notorious_o guilty_a yet_o be_v there_o no_o 5._o no_o and_o yet_o that_o none_o do_v the_o learned_a rigaltius_n confess_v not._n ad_fw-la tertul._n l._n 2._o ad_fw-la vxor_fw-la c._n 5._o heathen_n that_o have_v wit_n enough_o to_o recriminate_a the_o other_o 1._o other_o see_v tertul._n apol._n c._n 21._o et_fw-fr de_fw-fr carne_fw-la christi_fw-la c._n 4.5_o justin_n martyr_n apol._n 2._o arnob_n l._n 2._o orig._n contr_n cell_n l._n 1._o article_n of_o our_o faith_n they_o sufficient_o traduce_v that_o we_o shall_v worship_v a_o man_n and_o he_o too_o a_o malefactor_n crucify_v by_o pilate_n how_o will_v they_o have_v triumph_v can_v they_o have_v add_v that_o they_o worship_v a_o bit_n of_o bread_n too_o which_o coster_n himself_o think_v a_o more_o ridiculous_a idolatry_n than_o any_o the_o heathen_n be_v guilty_a of_o since_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v start_v we_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o reproach_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n jew_n heathen_n mahometan_n against_o we_o on_o this_o account_n 973._o account_n see_v du_fw-fr perron_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr euchar_n l._n 3._o c._n 29._o p._n 973._o be_v there_o no_o apostate_n that_o can_v tell_v they_o of_o this_o secret_a before_o not_o any_o julian_n that_o have_v malice_n enough_o to_o publish_v their_o confusion_n certain_o have_v the_o ancient_n be_v the_o man_n they_o be_v now_o endeavour_v to_o be_v represent_v we_o have_v long_o ere_o this_o see_v the_o whole_a world_n fill_v with_o the_o write_n that_o have_v proclaim_v their_o shame_n in_o one_o of_o the_o great_a instance_n of_o impudence_n and_o inconsideration_n to_o attack_v their_o enemy_n for_o that_o very_a crime_n of_o which_o themselves_o be_v more_o notorious_o guilty_a v._n nor_o do_v their_o manner_n of_o dispute_v against_o the_o heretical_a christian_n any_o less_o speak_v their_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n 1687._o see_v this_o full_o handle_v in_o a_o late_a treatise_n call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o transubstantiation_n compare_v etc._n etc._n 1687._o than_o their_o way_n of_o oppose_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_n it_o be_v a_o great_a argument_n among_o they_o to_o expose_v the_o frenzy_n of_o eutyches_n who_o imagine_v some_o such_o kind_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o divine_a to_o produce_v the_o example_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o as_o there_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n say_v p._n gelasius_n be_v perfect_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n pass_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n yet_o so_o as_o still_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o property_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n or_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n etc._n this_o argument_n be_v manage_v by_o st._n chrysostome_n epist_n ad_fw-la caesarium_fw-la monachus_fw-la by_o theodoret_n dial._n 2._o pag._n 85_o ed_n g._n l._n paris_n 1642._o tom._n 4._o gelasius_n in_o opere_fw-la contra_fw-la eutychen_n &_o nestorium_n he_o thus_o state_v the_o eutychian_a here●●e_n here●●e_n dicunt_fw-la unam_fw-la esse_fw-la naturam_fw-la i.e._n divinam_fw-la against_o this_o he_o thus_o dispute_v certain_o sacramenta_fw-la quae_fw-la sumimus_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christ_n divina_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la definit_a substantia_fw-la vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n satis_fw-la ergo_fw-la nobis_fw-la evidentur_fw-la ostenditur_fw-la hoc_fw-la nobis_fw-la de_fw-la ipso_fw-la christo_fw-la domino_fw-la sentiendum_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o ejus_fw-la imagine_v profitemur_fw-la ut_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o hanc_fw-la sc_fw-la in_o divinam_fw-la transeant_fw-la s._n spiritu_fw-la perficiente_fw-la substantiam_fw-la permanentes_fw-la tamen_fw-la in_o suae_fw-la proprietate_fw-la naturae_fw-la sic_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o here_o the_o
humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n still_o remain_v though_o assume_v by_o and_o conjoin_v to_o the_o divine_a which_o word_n as_o their_o editor_n have_v do_v well_o to_o set_v a_o cautè_fw-la upon_o in_fw-la the_o margin_n to_o signify_v their_o danger_n so_o this_o be_v clear_a from_o they_o that_o gelasius_n and_o so_o the_o other_o writer_n that_o have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o argument_n as_o st._n chrysostome_n theodoret_n etc._n etc._n must_v have_v think_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n no_o more_o to_o have_v be_v real_o change_v into_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o do_v believe_v his_o humane_a nature_n to_o have_v be_v true_o turn_v into_o the_o divine_a for_o that_o otherwise_o the_o parallel_n will_v have_v stand_v they_o in_o no_o stead_n nay_o will_v have_v afford_v a_o defence_n of_o that_o heresy_n which_o they_o undertake_v to_o oppose_v by_o it_o vi_o yet_o more_o have_v the_o primitive_a christian_n believe_v this_o great_a change_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o we_o find_v none_o of_o those_o mark_v nor_o sign_n of_o it_o that_o the_o world_n have_v since_o abound_v with_o 4._o with_o see_v the_o contrary_n prove_v that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o believe_v this_o by_o blondel_n de_fw-mi l'euch_fw-ge c._n 8._o claude_n rep._n au_o 2._o traitte_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr perpetuite_fw-fr part_n 1._o c._n 4._o no_o talk_n of_o accident_n exist_v without_o subject_n of_o the_o sense_n be_v liable_a to_o be_v deceive_v in_o judge_v of_o their_o proper_a object_n in_o short_a no_o philosophy_n corrupt_v to_o maintain_v this_o paradox_n no_o adoration_n procession_n vow_n pay_v to_o it_o as_o to_o christ_n himself_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a little_a time_n since_o the_o cit_fw-la the_o under_o greg._n ix_o ann._n 1240._o vid._n nauclerum_fw-la ad_fw-la ann._n cit_fw-la bell_n come_v in_o play_n to_o give_v the_o people_n notice_n that_o they_o shall_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_n this_o new_a god._n the_o 1264._o the_o institute_v by_o vrban_n four_o ann._n 1264._o feast_n in_o honour_n of_o it_o be_v a_o invention_n of_o yesterday_n the_o adore_v of_o it_o in_o the_o street_n no_o late_a no_o indeed_o in_o all_o probability_n a_o hundred_o year_n late_a old_a have_v not_o those_o first_o christian_n respect_n sufficient_a for_o our_o bless_a saviour_n or_o do_v they_o perhaps_o do_v all_o this_o let_v they_o show_v it_o we_o if_o they_o can_v but_o till_o then_o we_o must_v beg_v leave_n to_o conclude_v that_o since_o we_o find_v not_o the_o least_o footstep_n of_o any_o of_o these_o necessary_a appendage_n of_o this_o doctrine_n among_o the_o primitive_a christian_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o opinion_n neither_o vii_o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o we_o do_v not_o only_o not_o find_v any_o such_o proof_n as_o these_o of_o this_o doctrine_n but_o we_o find_v other_o instance_n direct_o contrary_a to_o this_o belief_n in_o some_o church_n they_o 8._o they_o so_o in_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n see_v hesych_n in_o levitic_n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o burn_v what_o remain_v of_o the_o consecrate_a element_n 35._o element_n so_o in_o that_o of_o constantinople_n evag._n hist_o l._n 4._o c._n 35._o in_o other_o they_o give_v it_o to_o little_a child_n to_o eat_v 18._o eat_v vid._n apud_fw-la author_n vit._n basilii_n c._n 8._o in_o vit._n pat._n l._n 1._o this_o custom_n be_v condemn_v in_o a_o council_n at_o carthage_n anno_fw-la 419._o vid._n codic_n eccl._n afric_n justel_n c._n 18._o in_o some_o they_o bury_v it_o with_o their_o dead_a in_o all_o they_o permit_v the_o communicants_a to_o carry_v home_o some_o remnant_n of_o they_o they_o send_v it_o abroad_o by_o sea_n by_o land_n from_o one_o church_n and_o village_n to_o another_o without_o any_o provision_n of_o bell_n or_o taper_n canopy_n or_o incense_n or_o any_o other_o mark_n of_o adoration_n they_o sometime_o make_v 164._o make_v vid._n st._n august_n oper._n imp_n contr_n julian_n lib._n 3._o c._n 164._o poultice_n of_o the_o bread_n they_o mix_v the_o syn._n the_o see_v a_o instance_n of_o this_o in_o baronius_n ann._n 648._o sect._n 15._o the_o 8_o general_n council_n do_v the_o same_o in_o act._n syn._n wine_n with_o their_o ink_n all_o which_o we_o can_v never_o imagine_v such_o holy_a man_n will_v have_v presume_v to_o do_v have_v they_o indeed_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n viii_o last_o since_o the_o prevalence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n what_o opposition_n have_v it_o meet_v with_o what_o schism_n have_v it_o cause_v what_o infinite_a debate_n have_v there_o rise_v about_o it_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o trouble_n of_o berenger_n in_o the_o eleven_o of_o the_o waldenses_n albigenses_n and_o other_o in_o the_o twelve_o century_n of_o wickliff_n hus_n etc._n etc._n who_o continue_v the_o opposition_n and_o final_o of_o the_o great_a reformation_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o last_o age_n by_o all_o which_o this_o heresy_n have_v be_v oppose_v ever_o since_o it_o come_v to_o any_o knowledge_n in_o the_o church_n now_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o be_v believe_v that_o so_o many_o century_n shall_v pass_v so_o many_o heresy_n shall_v arise_v and_o a_o doctrine_n so_o full_a of_o contradiction_n remain_v uncontested_a in_o the_o church_n for_o almost_o a_o thousand_o year_n that_o berenger_n shall_v be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o that_o shall_v begin_v to_o credit_v his_o sense_n to_o consult_v his_o reason_n or_o even_o to_o defend_v his_o creed_n these_o be_v improbability_n that_o will_v need_v very_o convince_a argument_n indeed_o to_o remove_v they_o but_o for_o the_o little_a late_a french_a trick_n of_o prove_v this_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o have_v be_v receive_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n claude_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o treatise_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr perpetuite_fw-fr answer_v by_o mons_fw-la claude_n because_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o present_a and_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v they_o it_o be_v impossible_a a_o change_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v i_o suppose_v we_o need_v only_o turn_v the_o term_n of_o the_o argument_n to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o proof_n viz._n that_o from_o all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o observation_n that_o may_v be_v offer_v of_o the_o like_a kind_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o doctrine_n at_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o from_o thence_o see_v if_o they_o can_v conclude_v that_o neither_o be_v it_o believe_v now_o thus_o contrary_a be_v this_o doctrine_n to_o the_o best_a and_o pure_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o less_o second_o ii_o to_o right_a reason_n too_o it_o be_v endless_a to_o heap_v together_o all_o the_o contradiction_n that_o may_v be_v offer_v to_o prove_v this_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v length_n and_o nothing_o long_a 46._o see_v mr._n chillingworth_n against_o knot_n c._n four_o n._n 46._o breadth_n and_o nothing_o broad_a thickness_n and_o nothing_o thick_a whiteness_n and_o nothing_o white_a roundness_n and_o nothing_o round_a weight_n and_o nothing_o heavy_a sweetness_n and_o nothing_o sweet_a moisture_n and_o nothing_o moist_a fluidness_n and_o nothing_o flow_v many_o action_n and_o no_o agent_n many_o passion_n and_o no_o patient_n i.e._n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o long_a broad_n thick_a white_a round_a heavy_a sweet_a moist_a flow_v active_a passive_a nothing_o that_o bread_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o not_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o bread_n become_v any_o thing_n of_o christ_n neither_o the_o matter_n nor_o the_o form_n nor_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v either_o the_o matter_n or_o the_o form_n or_o the_o accident_n of_o christ_n that_o bread_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o nothing_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o the_o same_o action_n turn_v into_o christ_n and_o yet_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v nothing_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v have_v its_o just_a dimension_n and_o just_a distance_n of_o its_o part_n one_o from_o another_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n not_o have_v it_o but_o all_o its_o part_n together_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a point_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v be_v whole_o above_o its_o self_n and_o whole_o below_o its_o self_n within_o its_o self_n and_o without_o its_o self_n on_o the_o right-hand_a and_o on_o the_o lefthand_n and_o roundabout_a its_o self_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v move_v to_o and_o from_o its_o self_n and_o yet_o lie_v still_o or_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v carry_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o through_o the_o middle_a space_n
and_o yet_o not_o move_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o certainty_n in_o our_o sense_n and_o yet_o that_o we_o shall_v know_v something_o certain_o and_o yet_o know_v nothing_o but_o by_o our_o sense_n that_o that_o which_o be_v and_o be_v long_o ago_o shall_v now_o begin_v to_o be_v that_o that_o be_v now_o to_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o which_o be_v not_o nothing_n but_o something_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v before_o and_o after_o its_o self_n these_o and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n be_v the_o unavoidable_a and_o most_o of_o they_o the_o avow_v consequence_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o i_o need_v not_o say_v all_o of_o they_o contradiction_n to_o right_a reason_n but_o i_o shall_v insist_v rather_o upon_o such_o instance_n as_o the_o primitive_a father_n have_v judge_v to_o be_v absurd_a and_o impossible_a and_o which_o will_v at_o once_o show_v both_o the_o falseness_n and_o novelty_n of_o this_o monstrous_a doctrine_n and_o such_o be_v these_o 253._o these_o see_v example_n of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o collect_v by_o blondel_n eclaircissement_n familiar_n the_o la_fw-fr controverse_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr eucharistie_n cap._n 8._o p._n 253._o that_o a_o thing_n already_o exist_v shall_v be_v produce_v anew_o that_o a_o finite_a thing_n shall_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o a_o body_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o place_n and_o yet_o take_v up_o no_o room_n in_o it_o that_o a_o body_n shall_v penetrate_v the_o dimension_n of_o another_o body_n that_o a_o body_n shall_v exist_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n that_o a_o real_a body_n shall_v be_v invisible_a and_o impassable_a that_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v its_o self_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o its_o self_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v contain_v in_o and_o participate_v of_o its_o self_n 1668._o self_n mounseur_fw-fr claude_n rep._n au_o 2._o traitte_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr perpetuite_n part_n 1._o c._n 4._o n._n 11._o p._n 73._o ed._n 4to_o paris_n 1668._o that_o a_o accident_n shall_v exist_v by_o its_o self_n without_o a_o subject_a after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o substance_n all_o these_o thing_n the_o primitive_a father_n have_v declare_v to_o be_v in_o their_o opinion_n gross_a absurdity_n and_o contradiction_n without_o make_v any_o exception_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o some_o do_v now_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v well_o if_o the_o impossibility_n stop_v here_o but_o alas_o the_o repugnancy_n extend_v to_o the_o very_a creed_n its_o self_n and_o destroy_v the_o chief_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o fundamental_o of_o christianity_n how_o can_v that_o man_n profess_v that_o he_o believe_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o have_v be_v bear_v xuj_o age_n since_o of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o very_a body_n he_o see_v the_o priest_n about_o to_o make_v now_o before_o his_o eye_n that_o he_o believe_v he_o to_o have_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o behold_v he_o be_v yet_o with_o we_o upon_o earth_n there_o to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n till_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v come_v again_o with_o glory_n to_o judge_n both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o behold_v he_o be_v here_o carry_v through_o the_o street_n lock_v up_o in_o a_o box_n adore_v first_o and_o then_o eat_v by_o his_o own_o creature_n carry_v up_o and_o down_o in_o several_a manner_n and_o to_o several_a place_n and_o sometime_o lose_v out_o of_o a_o priest_n pocket_n these_o be_v no_o far-fetched_a consideration_n they_o be_v the_o obvious_a consequence_n of_o this_o belief_n and_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v impossible_a as_o doubtless_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n they_o be_v i_o suppose_v it_o may_v be_v very_o much_o the_o concern_v of_o every_o one_o that_o profess_v this_o faith_n to_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o they_o and_o think_v what_o account_n must_v one_o day_n be_v give_v of_o their_o persist_v obstinate_o in_o a_o point_n so_o evident_o erroneous_a that_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o a_o impartial_a judgement_n will_v present_o have_v show_v they_o the_o falseness_n of_o it_o but_o god_n have_v not_o leave_v himself_o without_o far_a witness_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o have_v give_v we_o three_o iii_o the_o conviction_n of_o our_o sense_n against_o it_o a_o argument_n this_o which_o since_o it_o can_v be_v answer_v they_o seem_v resolve_v to_o run_v it_o down_o as_o the_o stoic_a in_o lucian_n who_o begin_v to_o call_v name_n when_o he_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o say_v for_o himself_o but_o if_o the_o sense_n be_v such_o ill_a informer_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v trust_v in_o matter_n of_o this_o moment_n will_v these_o disputer_n please_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o authority_n they_o have_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o christianity_n first_o found_v upon_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o be_v not_o the_o sense_n judge_n of_o those_o miracle_n be_v not_o the_o incarnation_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n have_v we_o any_o other_o argument_n to_o warrant_v our_o belief_n of_o these_o but_o what_o come_v to_o we_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o our_o sense_n 29._o sense_n john_n xx_o 27_o 29._o do_v not_o christ_n himself_o appeal_v to_o they_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o own_o rise_n the_o romanist_n himself_o believe_v transubstantiation_n because_o he_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o rather_o to_o speak_v more_o agreeable_o to_o the_o method_n of_o their_o church_n because_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v there_o be_v such_o word_n there_o as_o he_o est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la now_o not_o to_o inquire_v how_o far_o those_o word_n will_v serve_v to_o warrant_v this_o doctrine_n be_v it_o not_o evident_a that_o he_o can_v be_v sure_o there_o be_v any_o such_o word_n there_o if_o he_o may_v not_o trust_v his_o sense_n and_o if_o he_o may_v be_v it_o not_o as_o plain_a that_o he_o must_v seek_v for_o some_o other_o meaning_n than_o what_o they_o give_v of_o they_o let_v we_o suppose_v the_o change_n they_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v supernatural_a be_v it_o as_o much_o a_o miracle_n as_o they_o desire_v the_o very_a character_n of_o a_o miracle_n be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o sense_n nor_o god_n nor_o christ_n nor_o any_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n ever_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o and_o i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o any_o one_o to_o judge_v what_o progress_n christianity_n will_v have_v make_v in_o the_o world_n if_o it_o have_v have_v no_o other_o miracle_n but_o such_o as_o transubstanation_n to_o confirm_v it_o i._n e._n great_a wonder_n confident_o assert_v but_o such_o as_o every_o one_o sense_n and_o reason_n will_v tell_v he_o be_v both_o false_o assert_v and_o impossible_a to_o be_v perform_v but_o now_o while_o we_o thus_o oppose_v the_o error_n of_o some_o by_o assert_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o natural_a substance_n of_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n let_v not_o any_o one_o think_v that_o we_o will_v therefore_o set_v up_o the_o mistake_n of_o other_o as_o if_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v nothing_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n a_o bare_a commemoration_n only_o of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n our_o church_n indeed_o teach_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n continue_v still_o in_o their_o true_a and_o natural_a substance_n but_o it_o teach_v we_o also_o that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n etc._n see_v the_o church_n catechism_n and_o article_n twenty_o eight_o the_o communion-office_n etc._n etc._n which_o every_o faithful_a soul_n receive_v in_o that_o holy_a supper_n spiritual_o indeed_o and_o after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n but_o yet_o most_o true_o and_o real_o too_o the_o primitive_a father_n of_o who_o we_o have_v before_o speak_v sufficient_o assure_v we_o that_o they_o be_v stranger_n to_o that_o corporeal_a change_n that_o be_v now_o pretend_a but_o for_o this_o divine_a and_o mystical_a they_o have_v open_o enough_o declare_v for_o it_o nor_o be_v we_o therefore_o afraid_a to_o confess_v a_o change_n and_o that_o a_o very_a great_a one_o too_o make_v in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n which_o we_o here_o consecrate_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v give_v or_o receive_v by_o any_o one_o in_o this_o mystery_n as_o common_a ordinary_a food_n those_o holy_a element_n which_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n have_v sanctify_v and_o the_o divine_a word_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n apply_v to_o they_o though_o not_o transubstantiate_v yet_o certain_o separate_v to_o a_o holy_a use_n and_o
that_o debate_v stop_v or_o at_o least_o he_o shall_v have_v add_v some_o new_a strength_n to_o it_o but_o to_o send_v it_o again_o into_o the_o world_n in_o the_o same_o forlorn_a state_n it_o be_v before_o to_o take_v no_o notice_n either_o from_o who_o storehouse_n he_o borrow_a it_o or_o what_o have_v be_v return_v to_o it_o this_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v for_o themselves_o and_o it_o be_v a_o sad_a cause_n indeed_o that_o have_v nothing_o to_o keep_v it_o up_o but_o what_o they_o know_v very_o well_o we_o can_v answer_v and_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v unable_a to_o defend_v but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o point_n propose_v to_o be_v consider_v and_o first_o to_z state_z the_o notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o must_v observe_v one_a that_o our_o church_n utter_o deny_v our_o saviour_n body_n to_o be_v so_o real_o present_a in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n as_o either_o to_o leave_v heaven_n or_o to_o exist_v in_o several_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o confess_v with_o this_o author_n 27._o 1._o tract_n p._n 19_o 19_o 27._o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o less_o a_o contradiction_n for_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v in_o several_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o any_o other_o mode_n whatsoever_o than_o by_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v state_v the_o repugnancy_n be_v in_o the_o thing_n its_o self_n and_o not_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o two_o that_o we_o deny_v that_o in_o the_o sacred_a element_n which_o we_o receive_v there_o be_v any_o other_o substance_n than_o that_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n distribute_v to_o the_o communicant_n which_o alone_o they_o take_v into_o their_o mouth_n and_o press_v with_o their_o tooth_n 66._o answer_v to_o t._n g_n dialogue_n lond._n 1679._o pag._n 66._o in_o short_a all_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n imply_v by_o this_o phrase_n be_v only_o a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n invisible_a power_n and_o grace_n so_o in_o and_o with_o the_o element_n as_o by_o the_o faithful_a receive_n of_o they_o to_o convey_v spiritual_a and_o real_a effect_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n as_o the_o body_n assume_v by_o angel_n may_v be_v call_v their_o body_n while_o they_o assume_v they_o or_o rather_o as_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o of_o his_o spirit_n quicken_a and_o enliven_a the_o soul_n of_o believer_n so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n be_v the_o real_a but_o the_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n thus_o have_v that_o learned_a man_n to_o who_o t._n g._n first_o make_v this_o objection_n state_v the_o notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n profess_v by_o we_o and_o that_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v evident_a not_o only_o from_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o our_o xxviii_o article_n and_o of_o our_o church_n catechism_n but_o also_o from_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o that_o office_n which_o we_o use_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o it_o in_o our_o exhortation_n to_o it_o this_o bless_a eucharist_n be_v express_o call_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o if_o with_o a_o true_a penitent_a heart_n and_o lively_a faith_n we_o receive_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n then_o we_o spiritual_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood._n when_o the_o priest_n deliver_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n he_o bid_v the_o communicant_a take_v and_o eat_v this_o in_o remembrance_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o thou_o and_o feed_v on_o he_o in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n with_o thanksgiving_n in_o our_o prayer_n after_o the_o receive_v we_o thank_v god_n for_o that_o he_o do●●_n vouchsafe_v to_o feed_v we_o who_o have_v due_o receive_v these_o holy_a mystery_n with_o the_o spiritual_a food_n of_o the_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o do_v assure_v we_o thereby_o of_o his_o favour_n and_o goodness_n towards_o we_o and_o that_o we_o be_v very_a member_n incorporate_a in_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o his_o son._n all_o which_o and_o many_o other_o the_o like_a expression_n clear_o show_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o we_o confess_v in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v no_o other_o than_o in_o st._n paul_n phrase_n a_o real_a communion_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n or_o as_o our_o church_n express_v it_o article_n xxviii_o that_o to_o such_o as_o right_o and_o worthy_o and_o with_o faith_n receive_v the_o same_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v a_o partake_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o likewise_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n be_v a_o partake_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o prayer_n of_o consecration_n in_o king_n edward_n vi_fw-la time_n the_o church_n of_o england_n after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n use_v that_o form_n which_o our_o author_n observe_v to_o have_v be_v since_o leave_v out_o 2._o tract_n i._o 2._o and_o with_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n vouchsafe_v to_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v these_o thy_o gift_n and_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o they_o may_v be_v unto_o we_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o most_o dear_o belove_v son_n jesus_n christ_n i._n e._n as_o the_o sense_n plain_o imply_v may_v communicate_v to_o our_o soul_n all_o the_o blessing_n and_o grace_n which_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o which_o be_v in_o effect_n the_o very_a same_o we_o now_o pray_v for_o in_o the_o same_o address_n hear_v we_o o_o merciful_a father_n we_o most_o humble_o beseech_v thou_o and_o grant_v that_o we_o receive_v these_o thy_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o thy_o son_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n holy_a institution_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n may_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o most_o bless_a body_n and_o blood._n between_o which_o two_o petition_n there_o be_v so_o near_o a_o affinity_n that_o have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d author_n be_v very_o desirous_a to_o find_v out_o mystery_n where_o there_o be_v indeed_o none_n he_o will_v hardly_o have_v suffer_v his_o puritan_n friend_n to_o have_v lead_v he_o to_o make_v so_o heavy_a a_o complaint_n 3._o pag._n 3._o about_o so_o small_a a_o variation_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o some_o man_n may_v possible_o have_v advance_v their_o private_a notion_n beyond_o what_o be_v here_o say_v but_o this_o be_v i_o be_o sure_a all_o that_o our_o church_n warrant_v or_o that_o we_o be_v therefore_o concern_v to_o defend_v and_o if_o there_o be_v indeed_o any_o who_o as_o our_o author_n here_o express_v it_o do_v believe_v christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v as_o in_o heaven_n so_o in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n they_o may_v please_v to_o consider_v how_o this_o can_v be_v reconcile_v with_o the_o rubric_n of_o our_o church_n that_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o here_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o next_o thing_n i_o proposs_v second_o to_o show_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o pretence_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n constant_o maintain_v by_o our_o most_o learned_a and_o orthodox_n divine_v and_o here_o because_o our_o author_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o appeal_v not_o only_o to_o our_o own_o but_o to_o the_o foreign_a divine_n for_o this_o new_a faith_n which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o impose_v upon_o we_o viz._n 7._o tract_n 1._o 1._o 7._o that_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n that_o his_o natural_a body_n that_o that_o very_a body_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o crucify_v on_o the_o cross_n etc._n etc._n be_v present_a as_o in_o heaven_n so_o here_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n i._n e._n in_o both_o at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o must_v be_v content_a to_o follow_v his_o step_n and_o inquire_v into_o the_o doctrine_n first_o of_o mr._n calvin_n and_o his_o follower_n next_o of_o our_o own_o countryman_n in_o this_o particular_a and_o first_o for_o mr._n calvin_n and_o his_o follower_n i_o can_v but_o observe_v what_o different_a charge_n be_v bring_v against_o they_o in_o this_o matter_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n we_o be_v tell_v by_o becanus_n the_o jesuit_n that_o 1625._o that_o calvinistae_fw-la negant_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la veer_fw-la realiter_fw-la &_o substantialiter_fw-la praesentem_fw-la
presence_n as_o they_o phrase_v it_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n i_o shall_v therefore_o produce_v only_o a_o witness_n or_o two_o of_o this_o king_n reign_n and_o so_o pass_v on_o to_o those_o that_o follow_v and_o one_a a._n b._n cranmer_z a.b._n cranmer_z cranmer_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o gardiner_n bishop_n of_o winchester_z object_v to_o he_o that_o he_o deny_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n reply_n that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n he_o never_o say_v nor_o think_v my_o book_n in_o divers_a place_n say_v clean_o contrary_a 1551._o answer_v to_o gardener_n bishop_n of_o winchester_z fol._n london_n 1551._o that_o christ_n be_v with_o we_o spiritual_o present_a be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a of_o we_o and_o dwell_v within_o we_o although_o corporal_o he_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o go_v into_o heaven_n pag._n 5._o 5._o pag._n 5._o as_o he_o give_v bread_n to_o be_v eat_v with_o our_o mouth_n so_o give_v he_o his_o very_a body_n to_o be_v eat_v with_o our_o faith._n and_o therefore_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n give_v himself_o true_o to_o be_v eat_v chaw_a and_o digest_v but_o all_o be_v spiritual_o with_o faith_n not_o with_o mouth_n pag._n 9_o 9_o pag._n 9_o as_o the_o wash_n outward_o in_o water_n be_v not_o a_o vain_a token_n but_o teach_v such_o a_o wash_n as_o god_n work_v inward_o in_o they_o that_o due_o receive_v the_o same_o so_o likewise_o be_v not_o the_o bread_n a_o vain_a token_n but_o show_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o godly_a receiver_n what_o god_n work_v in_o he_o by_o his_o almighty_a power_n secret_o and_o invisible_o and_o therefore_o as_o the_o bread_n be_v outward_o eat_v indeed_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n inward_o by_o faith_n eat_v indeed_o of_o all_o they_o that_o come_v thereto_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v which_o eat_v nourish_v they_o unto_o everlasting_a life_n and_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n 1601._o assertio_fw-la verae_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la de_fw-la sacramento_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la j._n ●hristi_fw-la serva●●ris_fw-la nostri_fw-la li●●ae_fw-la 8_o vo_z 1601._o lib._n 3._o where_o he_o set_v himself_o particular_o to_o state_n this_o very_a question_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n he_o declare_v cap._n 2._o that_o whereas_o the_o papist_n suppose_v christ_n to_o be_v under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v in_o those_o who_o worthy_o receive_v these_o holy_a element_n they_o think_v he_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n and_o to_o enter_v with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o assert_v that_o he_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o the_o soul_n and_o enter_v there_o by_o faith._n that_o christ_n be_v present_v only_o sacramental_o and_o spiritual_o in_o this_o sacred_a mystery_n p._n 116._o that_o since_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n he_o be_v there_o and_o not_o on_o earth_n p._n 118._o and_o that_o he_o can_v be_v in_o both_o together_o 128._o in_o short_a he_o give_v we_o this_o rule_n for_o interpret_n the_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o we_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o very_a body_n that_o hang_v on_o the_o cross_n etc._n etc._n cap._n 14._o p._n 180._o these_o say_v he_o and_o other_o expression_n of_o the_o like_a kind_n which_o speak_v christ_n to_o be_v upon_o earth_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v of_o christian_n by_o eat_v or_o drink_v be_v either_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v every_o where_n or_o else_o must_v be_v take_v figurative_o or_o spiritual_o for_o he_o be_v figurative_o only_a in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o spiritual_o in_o those_o that_o receive_v this_o bread_n and_o wine_n worthy_o but_o true_o and_o as_o to_o his_o body_n and_o flesh_n he_o be_v in_o heaven_n only_o from_o whence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a thus_o do_v this_o learned_a and_o holy_a martyr_n understand_v our_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n ridley_n bp._n ridley_n and_o the_o same_o be_v the_o idea_n which_o his_o companion_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o suffer_v bishop_n ridley_n have_v leave_v we_o of_o it_o in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n pag._n 33._o he_o tell_v we_o 1556._o ridlei_fw-mi de_fw-fr caenâ_fw-la dominicâ_fw-la assertio_fw-la genevae_n apud_fw-la jo._n crispinum_n 1556._o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n continue_v as_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o sacrament_n but_o so_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o change_n as_o to_o use_v office_n and_o dignity_n it_o be_v turn_v sacramental_o into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o baptism_n the_o water_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n that_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o can_v in_o any_o manner_n lie_v hide_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n p._n 34._o then_o he_o inquire_v whether_o therefore_o we_o take_v away_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n from_o the_o sacrament_n p._n 35._o and_o utter_o deny_v that_o this_o be_v either_o say_v or_o think_v by_o he_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n say_v he_o be_v always_o in_o heaven_n nor_o shall_v it_o depart_v thence_o before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n now_o this_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v conjoin_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n have_v not_o only_a life_n in_o itself_o but_o can_v and_o be_v wont_a to_o bestow_v it_o upon_o all_o those_o who_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n nor_n be_v it_o any_o hindrance_n to_o this_o that_o christ_n still_o remain_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o we_o be_v upon_o earth_n for_o by_o grace_n that_o be_v life_n as_o s._n john_n interpret_v it_o c._n 6_o and_o the_o property_n of_o it_o as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v profitable_a to_o we_o in_o this_o our_o pilgrimage_n here_o below_o he_o be_v with_o we_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n as_o the_o sun_n who_o though_o he_o never_o leave_v his_o orb_n yet_o by_o his_o life_n heat_n and_o influence_n be_v present_a to_o we_o pag._n 36_o 37._o hitherto_o then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o both_o the_o church_n and_o the_o divine_n know_v no_o other_o real_a presence_n than_o what_o have_v be_v before_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v still_o our_o doctrine_n we_o must_v now_o go_v on_o to_o the_o time_n of_o trial_n the_o day_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o her_o successor_n 4._o i._o tract_n tract_n iv_o pag._n 4._o when_o our_o author_n suppose_v that_o man_n of_o different_a judgement_n have_v the_o power_n now_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o beside_o the_o expression_n of_o particular_a man_n which_o we_o shall_v present_o consider_v we_o have_v two_o general_n presumption_n offer_v to_o we_o one_o that_o dr._n heyli●●_n and_o other_o have_v observe_v he_o say_v of_o this_o queen_n that_o she_o be_v a_o zealous_a propugner_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o may_v be_v very_o true_a and_o yet_o but_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n if_o she_o propugn_v it_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o her_o brother_n king_n edward_n the_o 6_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v do_v before_o and_o not_o in_o the_o new_a notion_n impose_v upon_o she_o by_o this_o author_n but_o without_o any_o manner_n of_o proof_n to_o warrant_v his_o suggestion_n the_o other_o that_o upon_o the_o review_n make_v by_o her_o divine_n of_o the_o common-prayer_n and_o article_n xxxi_o i._o treatise_n pag._n 2._o 2._o i._o and_o again_o p._n 22._o 22._o xxxi_o they_o strike_v out_o of_o the_o one_o the_o rubric_n against_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o passage_n before_o mention_v be_v of_o the_o same_o temper_n as_o the_o declaration_n in_o the_o liturgy_n out_o of_o the_o xxixth_o article_n and_o which_o have_v according_o be_v omit_v ever_o since_o and_o here_o i_o can_v but_o again_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o disingenuousness_n of_o this_o author_n in_o dissemble_v the_o true_a account_n that_o have_v so_o large_o be_v give_v by_o our_o late_a accurate_a compiler_n of_o the_o history_n of_o our_o reformation_n of_o this_o whole_a matter_n only_o for_o the_o advance_v so_o pitiful_a a_o insinuation_n of_o what_o i_o dare_v appeal_n to_o his_o own_o conscience_n whether_o he_o do_v not_o know_v to_o be_v otherwise_o i_o will_v beg_v leave_n to_o transcribe_v the_o whole_a passage_n and_o shall_v then_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o judge_v whether_o a_o man_n so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o book_n and_o so_o interest_v in_o this_o
very_a earnest_n against_o those_o who_o receive_v unworthy_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o by_o consequence_n tie_v not_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o the_o bread_n and_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v after_o a_o spiritual_a imperceptible_a and_o miraculous_a manner_n as_o for_o the_o term_n corporaliter_fw-la which_o he_o there_o use_v and_o which_o melancthon_n and_o some_o other_o have_v use_v before_o he_o that_o may_v be_v well_o enough_o understand_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n 17._o celess_a two_o 9_o 17._o as_o verè_fw-la or_o realiter_fw-la and_o be_v often_o so_o use_v both_o in_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o when_o st._n paul_n say_v of_o christ_n that_o in_o he_o dwell_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a that_o be_v real_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o shechinah_n or_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o again_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o substance_n d._n see_v hammend_v in_o coloss_n 1._o annot._fw-la d._n the_o reality_n oppose_v to_o the_o type_n and_o sigure_n of_o the_o law._n and_o so_o in_o the_o hebrew_n exposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v often_o use_v for_o essence_n as_o well_o as_o body_n lawd_n archbishop_n lawd_n and_o apply_v to_o spiritual_a as_o well_o as_o corporal_a thing_n nor_o can_v i_o see_v any_o more_o reason_n to_o understand_v archbishop_n lawd_n in_o any_o other_o sense_n he_o assert_v the_o true_a and_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o sacred_a feast_n 8._o 1_o tract_n tract_n fourteen_o pag._n 8._o but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o christ_n natural_a body_n which_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n be_v also_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n or_o in_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n nor_o have_v we_o any_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o understand_v it_o so_o to_o be_v plur_n be_v mont●gve_n origeres_n eccles._n tom._n prio_fw-la par_fw-fr postor_n p._n 247_o 249_o 250._o etc._n etc._n panis_n in_o sanaxi_n fit_a corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la et_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la credenies_fw-la nunt_fw-la ad_fw-la eundem_fw-la utrumque_fw-la moduin_fw-la &_o mensuram_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la naturaliter_fw-la itaque_fw-la nee_n panis_n ita_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la mystice_fw-la tantum_fw-la non_fw-la p●●sice_n vid._n plur_n and_o the_o same_o must_v be_v say_v of_o hall._n of_o bishop_n hall._n bishop_n hall_n bishop_n montague_n and_o bishop_n bilson_n bilson_n montagve_n bilson_n in_o who_o expression_n as_o they_o be_v quote_v by_o our_o author_n i_o find_v nothing_o that_o prove_v the_o sense_n he_o will_v impose_v upon_o they_o and_o who_o work_n have_v i_o now_o by_o i_o i_o may_v possible_o be_v able_a to_o give_v some_o better_a account_n of_o they_o though_o after_o all_o shall_v one_o of_o these_o in_o his_o violence_n against_o his_o adversary_n or_o the_o other_o in_o their_o pacific_a design_n of_o reconcile_a all_o party_n as_o to_o this_o point_n have_v say_v more_o than_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v impute_v to_o the_o circumstance_n they_o be_v in_o and_o the_o design_n they_o pursue_v rather_o than_o be_v set_v up_o for_o the_o measure_n either_o of_o their_o own_o or_o our_o church_n opinion_n and_o now_o i_o be_o mention_v these_o thing_n forbes_n bishop_n forbes_n i_o ought_v not_o pass_v over_o one_o other_o eminent_a instance_n of_o such_o a_o charitable_a undertake_n and_o which_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o our_o author_n of_o a_o quotation_n he_o may_v otherwise_o have_v want_v in_o that_o excellent_a bishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n bishop_n forbes_n concern_v who_o authority_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v offer_v only_o the_o censure_n of_o one_o than_o who_o none_o can_v have_v give_v a_o more_o worthy_a character_n of_o a_o person_n who_o so_o well_o deserve_v it_o as_o that_o good_a bishop_n do_v i_o do_v not_o deny_v preface_n author_n of_o the_o life_n of_o bishop_n bedel_n in_o the_o preface_n but_o his_o earnest_a desire_n of_o a_o general_a peace_n and_o union_n among_o all_o christian_n have_v make_v he_o too_o favourable_a to_o many_o of_o the_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o though_o a_o charity_n that_o be_v not_o well_o balance_v may_v carry_v one_o to_o very_a in_o iscreet_a thing_n yet_o the_o principle_n from_o whence_o thdy_o flow_v in_o he_o be_v so_o true_o good_a that_o the_o error_n to_o which_o it_o carry_v he_o aught_o to_o be_v either_o excuse_v or_o at_o least_o to_o be_v very_o gentle_o censure_v there_o remain_v now_o but_o two_o of_o all_o the_o divine_n he_o have_v produce_v to_o prove_v his_o new_a fancy_n which_o he_o will_v set_v up_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o those_o as_o little_a for_o his_o purpose_n as_o any_o he_o have_v hitherto_o mention_v taylor_n bishop_n taylor_n bishop_n taylor_n and_o mr._n thorndyke_n for_o bishop_n taylor_n i_o can_v acquit_v our_o author_n of_o a_o wilful_a prevarication_n since_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o have_v so_o plain_o oppose_v his_o notion_n and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a book_n he_o quote_v and_o which_o he_o write_v on_o purpose_n to_o show_v our_o meaning_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n 1674._o polemical_a discourse_n p._n 182._o london_n 1674._o that_o he_o can_v not_o but_o have_v know_v that_o he_o misrepresent_v he_o i_o shall_v set_v down_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o treatise_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o general_o of_o the_o protestant_n in_o this_o article_n be_v that_o after_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n have_v right_o pray_v and_o bless_v or_o consecrate_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n the_o symbol_n become_v change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o sacramental_a i.e._n in_o a_o spiritual_a real_a manner_n so_o that_o all_o that_o worthy_o communicate_v do_v by_o faith_n receive_v christ_n real_o effectual_o to_o all_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o passion_n it_o be_v bread_n and_o it_o be_v christ_n body_n it_o be_v bread_n in_o in_o substance_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o christ_n be_v as_o real_o give_v to_o all_o that_o be_v true_o dispose_v as_o the_o symbol_n be_v p._n 183._o it_o be_v here_o as_o in_o the_o other_o sacrament_n for_o as_o there_o natural_a water_n become_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n so_o here_o bread_n and_o wine_n become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o there_o and_o here_o too_o the_o first_o substance_n be_v change_v by_o grace_n but_o remain_v the_o same_o in_o nature_n we_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n real_o but_o spiritual_o they_o the_o papist_n say_v it_o be_v there_o real_o but_o spiritual_o for_o so_o bellarmin_n be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v allow_v in_o this_o question_n where_o now_o be_v the_o difference_n here_o by_o spiritual_o they_o mean_v present_a after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n by_o spiritual_o we_o mean_v present_a to_o our_o spirit_n only_o that_o be_v so_o as_o christ_n be_v not_o present_a to_o any_o other_o sense_n but_o that_o of_o faith_n or_o spiritual_a susception_n they_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v true_o present_a there_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o not_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o all_o or_o any_o body_n but_o we_o by_o the_o real_a spiritual_a presence_n of_o christ_n do_v understand_v christ_n to_o be_v present_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v present_a in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o blessing_n and_o grace_n and_o this_o be_v all_o we_o mean_v beside_o the_o tropical_a and_o figurative_a presence_n such_o be_v the_o account_n which_o that_o excellent_a bishop_n here_o give_v not_o only_o of_o his_o own_o but_z as_o he_o express_o term_n it_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o protestant_n belief_n in_o this_o matter_n our_o author_n dissimulation_n of_o it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o inexcusable_a 20_o treatise_n one_a p._n 20_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o zealous_a a_o advocate_n he_o make_v he_o of_o his_o cause_n when_o all_o this_o that_o i_o have_v transcribe_v be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o section_n and_o almost_o in_o the_o same_o page_n with_o what_o he_o have_v cite_v for_o his_o little_a remark_n upon_o the_o title_n of_o the_o bishop_n book_n where_o he_o call_v it_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o spiritual_a whence_o he_o will_v infer_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o two_o term_n and_o find_v something_o real_a that_o be_v not_o spiritual_a in_o this_o sacrament_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o design_n of_o that_o distinction_n be_v this_o there_o be_v several_a sort_n of_o real_a presence_n the_o papist_n the_o lutheran_n the_o church_n of_o england_n all_o
allow_v a_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o after_o different_a manner_n it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a to_o add_v somewhat_o more_o to_o show_v what_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n he_o undertake_v to_o maintain_v and_o he_o know_v no_o word_n more_o proper_a to_o express_v it_o by_o than_o spiritual_a which_o do_v not_o therefore_o imply_v a_o distinction_n from_o but_o limitation_n of_o the_o other_o term_n real_a and_o thus_o he_o explain_v it_o n._n 6._o and_o 7._o of_o that_o section_n 183._o pag._n 183._o where_o he_o show_v that_o the_o spiritual_a be_v also_o a_o real_a presence_n and_o indeed_o more_o proper_o so_o than_o any_o other_o in_o short_a thus_o he_o conclude_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 186._o pag_n 186._o in_o the_o same_o section_n between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o now_o say_v he_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o symbol_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n or_o no_o for_o it_o be_v grant_v on_o all_o side_n but_o whether_o this_o conversion_n be_v sacramental_a and_o figurative_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v natural_a and_o bodily_a nor_o be_v it_o whether_o christ_n be_v take_v real_o but_o whether_o he_o be_v take_v in_o a_o spiritual_a or_o in_o a_o natural_a manner_n we_o say_v the_o conversion_n be_v figurative_a mysterious_a and_o sacramental_a they_o say_v it_o be_v proper_a natural_a and_o corporal_n we_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v real_o take_v by_o faith_n by_o the_o spirit_n to_o all_o real_a effect_n of_o his_o passion_n this_o be_v a_o explication_n a_o little_a different_a from_o our_o author_n they_o say_v he_o be_v take_v by_o the_o mouth_n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a and_o the_o virtual_a take_v he_o in_o virtue_n or_o effect_n be_v not_o sufficient_a though_o do_v also_o in_o the_o sacrament_n hic_fw-la rhodus_n hic_fw-la saltus_n if_o this_o do_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v he_o that_o he_o have_v injure_v this_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o representation_n of_o his_o opinion_n direct_o contrary_a to_o his_o sense_n i_o will_v offer_v he_o yet_o one_o passage_n more_o take_v from_o another_o part_n of_o his_o work_n and_o which_o i_o hope_v will_v thorough_o convince_v he_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 5_o letter_n to_o a_o gentleman_n that_o be_v tempt_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o have_v propose_v to_o the_o bishop_n this_o question_n whether_o without_o all_o danger_n of_o superstition_n or_o idolatry_n we_o may_v not_o render_v divine_a worship_n to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n as_o present_v in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n or_o host_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o that_o host_n the_o question_n be_v certain_o every_o way_n pertinent_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o make_v to_o it_o 70_o see_v p●l●mi●_n 〈…〉_o ●ag_fw-mi 6●_n 70_o we_o may_v not_o render_v divine_a worship_n to_o he_o as_o present_v in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n without_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n because_o he_o be_v not_o there_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o therefore_o you_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la which_o must_v needs_o be_v idolatry_n well_o 10._o treat_n one_a pag._n 10._o but_o still_o it_o may_v be_v the_o bishop_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o exclude_v the_o corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la but_o only_o the_o corporal_n or_o natural_a manner_n of_o that_o body_n let_v we_o therefore_o hear_v how_o he_o go_v on_o for_o idolum_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la say_v st._n paul_n and_o christ_n as_o present_v by_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o non-en_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a there_o be_v no_o suchthing_n what_o not_o as_o christ_n there_o no_o way_n as_o to_o his_o humane_a nature_n no_o he_o be_v say_v the_o bishop_n present_v there_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o his_o divine_a blessing_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o body_n the_o real_a effective_a consequent_n of_o his_o passion_n but_o for_o any_o other_o presence_n it_o be_v idolum_fw-la it_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world._n adore_v christ_n in_o heaven_n for_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o till_o the_o time_n of_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n this_o then_o be_v bishop_n tailor_n be_v notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o now_o i_o be_o confident_a our_o author_n himself_o will_v remit_v he_o to_o the_o company_n of_o those_o old_a zuinglian_a bishop_n cranmer_z ridley_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o live_v before_o that_o q._n elizabeth_n have_v propugn_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o new_a model_n into_o the_o head_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o now_o i_o be_o afraid_a his_o cause_n will_v be_v desperate_a unless_o mr._n thorndyke_n can_v support_v it_o thorndyke_n mr._n thorndyke_n and_o how_o unlikely_a he_o be_v to_o do_v it_o he_o may_v have_v learn_v from_o what_o have_v be_v answer_v to_o t._n g._n on_o the_o same_o occasion_n 21._o occasion_n t._n g._n vialogue_n one_a pag._n 21._o t._n g._n have_v in_o his_o first_o dialogue_n quote_v the_o same_o place_n which_o our_o author_n have_v do_v since_o to_o prove_v his_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n his_o 92._o his_o answer_v to_o t._n g's_o dial._n pag._n 92._o adversary_n confess_v this_o but_o produce_v another_o that_o explain_v his_o meaning_n 30._o meaning_n thorndyke_n law_n of_o the_o church_n ch._n 4._o pag._n 30._o if_o it_o can_v any_o way_n be_v show_v say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n do_v ever_o pray_v that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v substitute_v instead_o of_o the_o element_n under_o the_o accident_n of_o they_o than_o i_o be_o content_a that_o this_o be_v account_v henceforth_o the_o sacramental_a presence_n of_o they_o in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o if_o the_o church_n only_o pray_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o element_n may_v make_v they_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o they_o which_o receive_v they_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n then_o be_v it_o not_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o can_v oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v the_o abolish_n of_o the_o element_n in_o their_o bodily_a substance_n because_o suppose_v that_o they_o remain_v they_o may_v nevertheless_o come_v to_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o convey_v the_o operation_n thereof_o to_o they_o that_o be_v dispose_v to_o receive_v it_o no_o otherwise_o than_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n convey_v the_o efficacy_n thereof_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o i_o suppose_v be_v reason_n enough_o to_o call_v it_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n sacramental_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n thus_o mr._n thorndyke_n express_v himself_o as_o to_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o yet_o after_o all_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o learned_a person_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v a_o particular_a notion_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o which_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o what_o our_o author_n will_v six_z upon_o he_o he_o think_v that_o the_o element_n by_o consecration_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n much_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v by_o incarnation_n and_o that_o so_o the_o very_a element_n become_v after_o a_o sort_n his_o body_n 94._o see_v his_o just_a weight_n and_o measure_n 4_o to_z lond._n 1662._o pag._n 94._o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o consecrate_v by_o these_o bare_a word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n as_o operatory_n inchang_v the_o element_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o that_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o have_v declare_v the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o command_v the_o use_n of_o it_o and_o by_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o command_n now_o it_o be_v execute_v and_o have_v always_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o god_n word_n of_o institution_n pray_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o present_a element_n may_v make_v they_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o by_o change_v they_o into_o the_o nature_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o nourish_v our_o lord_n christ_n on_o earth_n become_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o become_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o manhood_n hypostatical_o unite_v to_o his_o godhead_n say_v gregory_n nyssene_n but_o immediate_o and_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n i._n e._n his_o godhead_n for_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o incarnation_n the_o element_n by_o consecration_n be_v unite_v
place_n at_o once_o till_o the_o papist_n can_v demonstrate_v the_o possibility_n thereof_o by_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o by_o apparent_a reason_n we_o need_v not_o suppose_v that_o they_o say_v this_o doubt_v whether_o it_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n but_o because_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o contradiction_n secure_v they_o against_o the_o possibility_n of_o any_o such_o proof_n 1624._o proof_n this_o be_v evident_a in_o b._n taylor_n who_o think_v that_o god_n can_v not_o do_v this_o because_o it_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n real_a presence_n presence_n xi_o n._n 1._o p._n 230._o and_o ibid._n n._n 27._o he_o say_v it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a so_o also_o dr._n white_n profess_v that_o according_a to_o the_o order_n which_o god_n have_v fix_v by_o his_o word_n and_o will_n this_o can_v be_v do_v confer_v pag._n 446_o 447._o and_o before_o pag._n 181._o to_o this_o objection_n that_o though_o in_o nature_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o yet_o because_o god_n be_v omnipotent_a he_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v it_o we_o answer_v say_v he_o it_o impli_v a_o contradiction_n that_o god_n shall_v destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o thing_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n remain_v safe_a see_v 〈◊〉_d p._n 180_o 181._o white_a be_v work_n lond._n 1624._o and_o now_o i_o know_v but_o one_o objection_n more_o that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v offer_v against_o what_o i_o have_v say_v and_o which_o have_v answer_v i_o shall_v close_v this_o point_n for_o if_o this_o be_v all_o the_o church_n of_o england_n understand_v when_o it_o speak_v of_o a_o real_a presence_n viz._n a_o real_a sacramental_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o holy_a sign_n and_o a_o real_a spiritual_a presence_n in_o the_o inward_a communion_n of_o they_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o every_o worthy_a receiver_n will_v not_o this_o precipitate_v we_o into_o downright_a etc._n downright_a see_v 1_o treatise_n pag._n 23._o 23._o xxxii_o p._n 24._o 24._o xxxii_o p._n 25._o 25._o xxxvi_o xxxvii_o etc._n etc._n zuinglianism_n and_o render_v we_o after_o all_o our_o pretence_n as_o very_a sacramentary_n as_o they_o indeed_o i_o be_o not_o able_a direct_o to_o say_v whether_o it_o will_v or_o no_o because_o i_o find_v the_o opinion_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la very_o various_o represent_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n but_o yet_o first_o if_o by_o zuinglianism_n he_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v more_o proper_o 701._o proper_o smalcius_n de_fw-fr coen_n dom._n p._n 347._o id_fw-la disp_n 9_o de_fw-fr hypocr_n p._n 289._o volkelius_fw-la lib._n four_o cap._n 12._o p._n 304_o 319_o etc._n etc._n socinus_n in_o paraenesi_fw-la c._n four_o sclichtingius_fw-la disp_n de_fw-fr coeu_fw-fr dom._n p._n 701._o socinianism_n viz._n a_o mere_a commemoration_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o a_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o it_o it_o be_v evident_a it_o do_v not_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o positive_o confess_v that_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n there_o be_v a_o real_a and_o spiritual_a grace_n communicate_v to_o we_o even_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o that_o death_n and_o passion_n which_o we_o there_o set_v forth_o and_o this_o or_o somewhat_o very_a like_o it_o i_o find_v sometime_o to_o have_v be_v maintain_v by_o etc._n by_o zuingl_n see_v de_fw-fr provide_v dei_fw-la cap._n 6_o etc._n etc._n zuinglius_fw-la but_o now_o second_o if_o by_o zuinglianism_n he_o understand_v such_o a_o real_a prefence_n as_o deny_v only_o the_o coexistence_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n now_o in_o heaven_n at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n but_o deny_v nothing_o of_o that_o real_a and_o spiritual_a 2._o spiritual_a and_o this_o our_o author_n seem_v to_o insinuate_v see_v the_o place_n above_o cite_v and_o indeed_o other_o have_v allege_v this_o as_o the_o true_a opinion_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la see_v calvin_n tract_n de_fw-fr coen_n dom._n defence_n sacram._n admonit_n ad_fw-la westphal_n &_o passim_fw-la alibi_fw-la vid._n insuper_fw-la libr._n de_fw-fr orthod_n consens_fw-la c._n 7_o and_o especial_o hospin_n p._n 42_o 55_o 177_o etc._n etc._n hist_o sacr._n pa●●_n 2._o communion_n of_o it_o we_o have_v be_v fore_o mention_v this_o be_v indeed_o our_o doctrine_n nor_o shall_v we_o be_v ashamed_a to_o own_v it_o for_o any_o ill_a name_n he_o be_v able_a to_o put_v upon_o it_o but_o yet_o i_o wonder_v why_o he_o shall_v call_v this_o zuinglianism_n since_o if_o the_o common_a name_n of_o catholic_n or_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_a he_o may_v have_v find_v out_o a_o more_o ancient_a abettor_n of_o this_o real_a presence_n than_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o the_o truth_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o dangerous_a opposer_n both_o of_o their_o head_n and_o their_o faith_n that_o ever_o be_v i_o mean_v st._n paul_n who_o have_v not_o only_o clear_o express_v himself_o against_o they_o as_o to_o this_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 1_o cor._n x._o 16._o but_o in_o most_o of_o their_o other_o error_n leave_v such_o pernicious_a say_n to_o the_o world_n as_o all_o their_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n let_v i_o add_v nor_o all_o their_o anathema_n neither_o will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o overcome_v i_o shall_v close_v up_o this_o discourse_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n acknowledge_v by_o we_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n with_o a_o plain_a familiar_a example_n and_o which_o may_v serve_v at_o once_o both_o to_o illustrate_v and_o confirm_v the_o propriety_n of_o it_o a_o father_n make_v his_o last_o will_n and_o by_o it_o bequeath_v his_o estate_n and_o all_o the_o profit_n of_o it_o to_o his_o child_n 57_o vid._n cousin_n hist_o transubstantionis_fw-la cap._n v._o v._o 5._o p._n 57_o he_o deliver_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o son_n and_o bid_v he_o take_v there_o his_o house_n and_o land_n which_o by_o this_o his_o last_o will_v he_o deliver_v to_o he_o the_o son_n in_o this_o case_n receive_v nothing_o but_o a_o roll_n of_o parchment_n with_o a_o seal_n tie_v to_o it_o from_o his_o father_n but_o yet_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o parchment_n he_o be_v entitle_v to_o his_o estate_n perform_v the_o condition_n of_o his_o will_n and_o to_o all_o the_o benefit_n and_o advantage_n of_o it_o and_o in_o that_o deed_n he_o true_o and_o effectual_o receive_v the_o very_a house_n and_o land_n that_o be_v thereby_o convey_v to_o he_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o like_a manner_n be_v now_o about_o to_o leave_v the_o world_n give_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o his_o final_a bequest_n to_o we_o in_o it_o he_o convey_v to_o we_o a_o right_a to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o to_o all_o the_o spiritual_a blessing_n and_o grace_n that_o proceed_v from_o they_o so_o that_o as_o often_o as_o we_o receive_v this_o holy_a eucharist_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v we_o receive_v indeed_o nothing_o but_o a_o little_a bread_n and_o wine_n into_o our_o hand_n but_o by_o the_o blessing_n and_o promise_n of_o christ_n we_o by_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o real_o and_o true_o become_v partaker_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o son_n by_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n be_v make_v inheritor_n of_o his_o estate_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o more_o necessary_a for_o this_o that_o christ_n body_n shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n or_o the_o outward_a element_n which_o we_o receive_v be_v substantial_o turn_v into_o it_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o that_o other_o case_n that_o the_o very_a house_n and_o land_n shall_v be_v give_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o son_n to_o make_v a_o real_a delivery_n or_o conveyance_n of_o they_o or_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o change_v into_o the_o very_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o part_n ii_o chapter_n iii_o of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n as_o prescribe_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o be_v now_o arrive_v at_o the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n in_o which_o i_o must_v thus_o far_o change_v the_o method_n i_o pursue_v in_o the_o other_o subject_n as_o to_o consider_v first_o what_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o this_o point_n be_v and_o what_o our_o adversary_n exception_n against_o it_o be_v second_o what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o whether_o what_o this_o author_n have_v say_v in_o favour_n of_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v their_o practice_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o former_a of_o these_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o shall_v need_v go_v no_o far_o than_o the_o rubric_n we_o have_v beforementioned_a wherein_o it_o be_v express_o declare_v with_o reference_n to_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n communion_n rubr._n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o
communion_n that_o no_o adoration_n be_v intend_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v either_o to_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n there_o bodily_a receive_v or_o to_o any_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o that_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v still_o in_o their_o very_a natural_a substance_n and_o therefore_o may_v not_o be_v adore_v for_o that_o be_v idolatry_n to_o be_v abhor_v of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o here_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o more_o place_n than_o one._n this_o then_o be_v sufficient_o clear_v let_v we_o see_v what_o this_o author_n have_v to_o observe_v against_o it_o 1._o he_o suppose_v that_o we_o will_v grant_v 27._o treatise_n 1._o ch._n 4._o 4._o 39_o p._n 27._o that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n then_o kneel_v and_o adoration_n will_v be_v here_o also_o due_a upon_o such_o a_o account_n he_o mean_v that_o be_v christ_n himself_o here_o in_o his_o body_n actual_o present_a he_o ought_v to_o be_v adore_v and_o this_o he_o need_v not_o doubt_v of_o our_o readiness_n to_o grant_v 2._o though_o the_o corporeal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n xl_o ib._n ib._n xl_o i.e._n of_o its_o be_v there_o ad_fw-la modum_fw-la corporis_fw-la or_o clothe_v with_o the_o ordinary_a property_n of_o a_o body_n be_v deny_v as_o it_o be_v not_o only_o by_o the_o english_a divine_n but_o by_o the_o lutheran_n and_o roman_n yet_o let_v there_o be_v any_o other_o manner_n of_o presence_n know_v from_o divine_a revelation_n of_o the_o very_a same_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o this_o as_o real_a and_o essential_a as_o if_o corporeal_a and_o then_o i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o adoration_n will_v be_v no_o less_o due_a to_o it_o thus_o than_o so_o present_v now_o to_o this_o i_o shall_v at_o present_v only_o say_v that_o the_o supposition_n be_v absurd_a do_v not_o admit_v of_o a_o rational_a consideration_n those_o who_o deny_v a_o bodily_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o ask_v whether_o adoration_n may_v not_o be_v pay_v to_o his_o body_n which_o be_v confess_v not_o to_o be_v bodily_a present_n there_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v there_o some_o other_o way_n aught_o to_o have_v no_o other_o satisfaction_n than_o this_o that_o they_o suppose_v a_o impossibility_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v and_o therefore_o concern_v which_o no_o reasonable_a answer_n can_v be_v give_v some_o i_o know_v have_v be_v more_o free_a and_o allow_v for_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o the_o supposal_n have_v resolve_v contrary_a to_o our_o author_n but_o i_o think_v it_o very_o needless_a to_o dispute_v of_o the_o affection_n of_o a_o chimaera_n and_o wrangle_v about_o notion_n that_o have_v neither_o use_v nor_o existence_n 3._o xli_o treatise_n 1._o p._n 28._o 28._o xli_o he_o observe_v last_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v believe_v and_o affirm_v such_o a_o presence_n he_o mean_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o which_o they_o think_v adoration_n due_a i_o presume_v it_o be_v then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n for_o since_o the_o reformation_n i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o she_o have_v always_o hold_v the_o contrary_n but_o our_o author_n will_v prove_v it_o and_o that_o since_o the_o reformation_n ibid._n ibid._n for_o he_o say_v he_o have_v in_o his_o time_n meet_v with_o no_o less_o than_o five_o of_o our_o writer_n and_o those_o of_o no_o mean_a account_n neither_o that_o have_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n this_o indeed_o be_v a_o very_a notable_a way_n of_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n but_o what_o now_o if_o i_o shall_v bring_v he_o fifteen_o other_o that_o have_v deny_v it_o then_o i_o hope_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n may_v be_v as_o fair_a for_o the_o contrary_n but_o we_o will_v examine_v his_o evidence_n first_o 28._o treatise_n 1._o 1._o xlii_o p._n 28._o bishop_n andrews_n he_o say_v declare_v that_o though_o we_o adore_v not_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o we_o adore_v christ_n in_o and_o with_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o and_o without_o the_o sacrament_n and_o assure_v the_o world_n that_o k._n james_n look_v upon_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o present_a and_o true_o to_o be_v adore_v in_o it_o how_o this_o bishop_n think_v christ_n true_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o have_v see_v before_o and_o may_v from_o thence_o easy_o conclude_v how_o he_o suppose_v he_o may_v be_v adore_v there_o viz._n as_o in_o all_o other_o holy_a office_n in_o which_o we_o confess_v he_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n to_o be_v present_a with_o we_o but_o especial_o in_o this_o sacred_a mystery_n and_o thus_o we_o all_o adore_v he_o both_o in_o and_o with_o and_o without_o the_o sacrament_n we_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v true_o present_a and_o therefore_o true_o to_o be_v adore_v by_o we_o but_o now_o for_o christ_n natural_a body_n of_o which_o and_o not_o of_o christ_n himself_o our_o dispute_n be_v if_o that_o be_v any_o otherwise_o true_o present_a than_o as_o we_o before_o show_v let_v it_o be_v remember_v that_o according_a to_o this_o bishop_n it_o must_v not_o be_v his_o glorify_a body_n above_o see_v above_o his_o body_n as_o it_o now_o be_v but_o his_o body_n crucify_a his_o body_n as_o offer_v for_o we_o and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o his_o death_n so_o he_o express_o affirm_v and_o this_o i_o believe_v our_o author_n himself_o will_v confess_v in_o his_o sense_n to_o be_v impossible_a his_o next_o witness_n be_v bishop_n taylor_n we_o worship_v 28._o treatise_n 1._o 1._o xliii_o p._n 28._o he_o mean_v say_v this_o author_n the_o body_n or_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o be_v he_o sure_a the_o bishop_n mean_v so_o if_o he_o be_v i_o be_o sure_a the_o bishop_n think_v we_o all_o of_o we_o commit_v idolatry_n in_o so_o do_v for_o be_v consult_v as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o whether_o without_o all_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n we_o may_v not_o render_v divine_a worship_n to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n as_o present_v in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n or_o host_n p._n see_v polemical_a discourse_n 5._o letter_n at_o the_o end_n p._n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o that_o host_n he_o express_o declare_v we_o may_v not_o render_v divine_a worship_n to_o he_o as_o present_v in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n without_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n because_o he_o be_v not_o there_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o therefore_o you_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la which_o must_v needs_o be_v idotry_n and_o indeed_o this_o our_o author_n know_v very_o well_o be_v his_o opinion_n who_o himself_o in_o his_o next_o treatise_n cite_v the_o xiiith_o section_n of_o his_o real_a presence_n 2._o treatise_n 2._o p_o .9_o .9_o vi_fw-it n._n 2._o which_o be_v write_v on_o purpose_n to_o prove_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o worship_v christ_n body_n in_o this_o sacrament_n but_o dissimulation_n of_o other_o man_n opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v perhaps_o as_o lawful_a on_o some_o occasion_n as_o if_o it_o be_v their_o own_o and_o why_o may_v not_o a_o author_n prevaricate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o adversary_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n since_o i_o have_v read_v of_o a_o royaume_n a_o the_o story_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o memoir_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr d'eageant_fw-fr print_v with_o permission_n at_o grenoble_n 1668._o pag._n 246_o i_o will_v set_v it_o down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n il'y_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr deja_fw-fr quelque_fw-fr tems_fw-fr que_fw-fr d'eageant_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr gagné_fw-fr l'un_fw-fr des_fw-fr minister_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr province_n de_fw-fr languedoc_n qui_fw-fr etoit_fw-fr des_fw-fr plus_fw-fr employez_fw-fr aux_fw-fr affaires_n &_o meneé_v the_o ceux_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr r._n p._n r._n &_o en_fw-fr l'estime_fw-fr particuliere_fw-la de_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr lesdiguiers_n il_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr meme_fw-fr secrettement_fw-fr moyenne_fw-fr sa_fw-fr conversion_n &_o obtenu_fw-fr un_fw-fr bref_n de_fw-fr rome_n portant_fw-la qu'_fw-fr en_fw-fr core_fw-mi qu'_fw-fr il_fw-fr eut_fw-fr etè_fw-fr receu_fw-fr au_fw-fr giron_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'eglise_fw-fr il_fw-fr luy_fw-fr etoit_fw-fr permis_fw-fr de_fw-fr continuer_n son_fw-fr ministere_fw-la durant_fw-mi 3_o ans_fw-fr pourveu_n qu'en_o say_v preche_n il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr dit_fw-fr rien_fw-fr de_fw-fr contraire_fw-fr à_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr uraye_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr &_o qu'_fw-fr il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr celebrât_fw-fr ponit_fw-la la_fw-fr cene_z le_fw-fr bref_n fût_fw-fr obtenu_fw-fr afinque_fw-la le_fw-fr minister_fw-fr pût_fw-fr estre_fw-fr continué_fw-fr dans_fw-fr les_fw-fr emplois_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr avoit_fw-fr &_o decovurir_fw-fr les_fw-fr
disturber_n of_o the_o father_n the_o better_a to_o show_v the_o antiquity_n of_o his_o new_a religion_n have_v pretend_v to_o search_v no_o less_o than_o into_o the_o secret_n of_o the_o jewish_a cabala_n after_o it_o and_o to_o have_v find_v out_o transubstantiation_n there_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o rabbinical_a folly_n etc._n consensus_fw-la veterum_fw-la p._n 21_o etc._n etc._n now_o however_o the_o very_a name_n of_o galatinus_n be_v sufficient_a to_o learned_a man_n to_o make_v they_o esteem_v his_o judgement_n in_o his_o jewish_a to_o be_v much_o the_o same_o as_o in_o his_o christian_a antiquity_n which_o follow_v after_o in_o those_o eminent_a piece_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v and_o s._n matthew_n be_v liturgy_n 27._o ibid._n p._n 27._o s._n andrew_n be_v work_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n dionysius_n be_v ecclesiast_fw-la hierarch_n etc._n etc._n yet_o because_o such_o stuff_n as_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o amuse_v those_o who_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o emptiness_n of_o it_o i_o be_v so_o much_o the_o rather_o incline_v to_o show_v what_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o jewish_a rite_n will_v furnish_v we_o with_o to_o overthrow_v their_o pretence_n and_o that_o the_o rabbin_n vision_n be_v of_o as_o little_a moment_n to_o confirm_v this_o conceit_n as_o their_o own_o miracle_n but_o whatever_o those_o of_o the_o other_o communion_n shall_v please_v to_o judge_v of_o my_o argument_n yet_o at_o least_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o eminent_a man_n of_o their_o own_o church_n may_v certain_o deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v by_o they_o who_o have_v free_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n any_o evident_a proof_n of_o transubstantiation_n nay_o some_o of_o who_o have_v think_v so_o little_a engagement_n upon_o they_o either_o from_o that_o or_o any_o other_o authority_n to_o believe_v it_o that_o they_o have_v live_v and_o die_v in_o their_o church_n without_o ever_o embrace_v of_o it_o and_o of_o this_o the_o late_a author_n of_o the_o 1686._o the_o traittè_fw-fr d'un_fw-fr autheur_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr communion_n roman_a touchant_a la_z transubstantiation_n lond._n 1686._o historical_a treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o which_o be_v just_a now_o set_v forth_o in_o our_o own_o language_n may_v be_v a_o eminent_a instance_n be_v a_o person_n at_o this_o day_n live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o no_o little_a esteem_n among_o all_o that_o know_v him._n it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o give_v any_o more_o particular_a character_n of_o he_o at_o this_o time_n they_o who_o shall_v please_v to_o peruse_v his_o book_n will_v find_v enough_o in_o it_o to_o speak_v in_o his_o advantage_n and_o if_o they_o have_v but_o any_o tolerable_a disposition_n to_o receive_v the_o truth_n will_v clear_o see_v that_o this_o point_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v the_o production_n of_o a_o blind_a and_o barbarous_a age_n unknown_a in_o the_o church_n for_o above_o one_o thousand_o year_n and_o never_o own_a by_o the_o great_a man_n in_o any_o age_n since_o the_o truth_n be_v if_o we_o inquire_v precise_o into_o this_o business_n of_o transubstantiation_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o it_o lay_v in_o a_o cloister_n by_o a_o unwary_a monk_n about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o seven_o century_n 36●_n about_o 636_o or_o 640._o see_v blondel_n the_o l'eucharistie_a c._n 14._o p._n 36●_n carry_v on_o by_o a_o cabal_n of_o man_n assemble_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o nic._n a_o 2._o council_n nic._n general_n council_n to_o introduce_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n into_o the_o church_n ann._n 787._o 426._o 787._o blondel_n l._n c._n cap._n 18._o pag._n 426._o form_v into_o a_o better_a shape_n by_o another_o radbertus_n another_o paschasius_fw-la radbertus_n monk_n ann._n 818._o and_o he_o too_o oppose_v by_o almost_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o his_o age_n and_o at_o last_o confirm_v by_o a_o age._n a_o see_v the_o treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n hist_o of_o the_o 9th_o age._n pope_n of_o who_o their_o own_o author_n have_v leave_v we_o but_o a_o very_a indifferent_a paris_n indifferent_a innocent_n iii_o super_fw-la omnes_fw-la mortales_fw-la ambitiosus_fw-la &_o superbus_fw-la pecuniaeque_fw-la sititor_fw-la i●satiabilis_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la omne_fw-la ●●●lera_fw-la pro_fw-la praemiis_fw-la datis_fw-la vel_fw-la promissis_fw-la cereus_fw-la &_o proclivis_fw-la matt._n paris_n character_n and_o in_o a_o haereticis_fw-la a_o council_n lateran_n iu_o can._n 3._o de_fw-la haereticis_fw-la synod_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v observe_v only_o this_o that_o it_o give_v the_o pope_n the_o power_n of_o unmaking_a king_n as_o well_o as_o the_o priest_n that_o of_o make_v their_o god._n but_o indeed_o i_o think_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o charge_v the_o council_n with_o either_o of_o these_o attempt_n since_o contrary_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v in_o such_o assembly_n receive_v in_o all_o age_n nothing_o be_v either_o judge_v or_o debate_v by_o the_o synod_n 573._o synod_n his_o omnibus_fw-la congregatis_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la loco_fw-la praefato_fw-la &_o juxta_fw-la morem_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la generalium_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la ordinibus_fw-la singulis_fw-la collocatis_fw-la facto_fw-la prius_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la papâ_fw-la exhortationis_fw-la sermone_fw-la recitata_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o pleno_fw-la concilio_n capitula_fw-la lxx_o quae_fw-la aliis_fw-la placabilia_fw-la aliis_fw-la videbantur_fw-la onerosa_fw-la matt._n paris_n ad_fw-la ann._n 1215._o see_v this_o confirm_v by_o mounseur_fw-fr du_fw-fr pin._n dissert_n vii_o paris_n 4_o 1686._o pag._n 572_o 573._o the_o pope_n only_o himself_o form_v the_o article_n digest_v they_o into_o canon_n and_o so_o read_v they_o to_o the_o father_n some_o of_o which_o their_o own_o historian_n tell_v we_o approve_v they_o other_o do_v not_o but_o however_o all_o be_v force_v to_o be_v content_v with_o they_o such_o be_v the_o first_o rise_v of_o this_o new_a doctrine_n 1215_o year_n after_o christ_n but_o still_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o and_o the_o follow_a age_n doubt_v not_o to_o dissent_v from_o it_o panis_n it_o see_v 3._o q._n 75._o art._n 6._o utrum_fw-la fact●_n consecratione_fw-la remaneat_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la sacramento_n forma_fw-la substantialis_fw-la panis_n aquinas_n who_o write_v about_o 50_o year_n after_o this_o definition_n speak_v of_o some_o who_o think_v the_o substantial_a form_n of_o the_o bread_n still_o to_o remain_v after_o consecration_n christi_fw-la consecration_n in._n 4_o d._n 11._o q._n 9_o quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la dicendum_fw-la de_fw-la conversione_n substantiae_fw-la panis_n in_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la salvo_n meliori_fw-la judicio_fw-la potest_fw-la aestimari_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-it in_fw-it isto_fw-la sacramento_n fiat_fw-la conuersio_fw-la substantiae_fw-la panis_n in_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la quod_fw-la ipsa_fw-la fit_a per_fw-la hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la corruptâ_fw-la formâ_fw-la panis_n materia_fw-la eius_fw-la sit_fw-la sub_fw-la formâ_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la durandus_fw-la doubt_v not_o to_o assert_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o element_n whatever_o become_v of_o the_o form_n and_o that_o it_o be_v 14._o be_v id._n in_o 4._o do_v 11._o q._n 4._o art._n 14._o rashness_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n can_v be_v there_o no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o transubstantiation_n to_o which_o 3._o which_o scotus_n in_o 4._o do_v 11._o q._n 3._o scotus_n also_o subscribe_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v save_v without_o transubstantiation_n 3._o transubstantiation_n id._n 4._o scent_n d._n 11._o q._n 3._o and_o that_o in_o plain_a term_n we_o be_v the_o easy_a and_o to_o all_o appearance_n the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o christ_n word_n in_o which_o 6._o which_o ockam_n in_o 4._o q._n 6._o ockam_n and_o 2._o and_o alliaco_fw-it in_fw-la 4._o q._n 6._o art_n 2._o d'alliaco_fw-it concur_v with_o he_o 10._o he_o contr._n capt_n bab●l_n cap._n 10._o fisher_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o prove_v the_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o their_o mass_n non_fw-la mass_n ferus_fw-la in_o matt._n 26._o cum_fw-la certum_fw-la sit_fw-la ibi_fw-la esse_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la quid_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la disputare_fw-la num_fw-la panis_n substantia_fw-la maneat_fw-la vel_fw-la non_fw-la ferus_fw-la will_v not_o have_v it_o inquire_v into_o how_o christ_n body_n be_v there_o and_o part_n and_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la eucharistiâ_fw-la see_v the_o treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n 1._o part_n tonstall_n think_v it_o be_v better_a to_o leave_v man_n to_o their_o liberty_n of_o belief_n in_o it_o those_o who_o in_o respect_n to_o their_o church_n definition_n do_v accept_v it_o yet_o free_o declare_v that_o cit_fw-la that_o vid._n bellarm_n de_fw-fr euch._n l._n 3._o c._n 23._o p._n 767_o 768._o suarez_n in_o 3._o part_n d._n th._n vol._n 3._o disp_n 50._o p._n 593_o 594._o cajetan_n in_o 3._o d._n th._n q._n 75._o art_n 1._o scotas_n l._n c._n 4._o sent._n d._n 11._o q._n 3._o with_fw-mi etiam_fw-la ockam_n alliac_n loc_fw-la supr_fw-la cit_fw-la before_o this_o
signification_n aught_o to_o be_v regard_v with_o a_o very_a just_a honour_n by_o we_o and_o whilst_o we_o worship_v he_o who_o death_n we_o herein_o commemorate_v and_o of_o who_o grace_n we_o expect_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n by_o it_o we_o ought_v certain_o to_o pay_v no_o little_a regard_n to_o the_o type_n and_o figure_n by_o which_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o represent_v the_o one_o and_o convey_v to_o we_o the_o other_o thus_o therefore_o we_o think_v we_o shall_v best_o divide_v our_o piety_n if_o we_o adore_v our_o redeemer_n in_o heaven_n yet_o omit_v nothing_o that_o may_v testify_v our_o just_a esteem_n of_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n on_o earth_n nor_o suffer_v the_o most_o zealous_a votary_n for_o this_o new_a opinion_n to_o exceed_v we_o in_o our_o care_n and_o reverence_n of_o approach_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n we_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v no_o less_o real_o present_a though_o after_o another_o manner_n than_o they_o nor_o do_v we_o less_o expect_v to_o communicate_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n with_o our_o soul_n than_o they_o who_o think_v they_o take_v he_o carnal_o into_o their_o mouth_n let_v our_o office_n of_o communion_n be_v examine_v let_v the_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n with_o which_o we_o celebrate_v this_o sacred_a feast_n be_v consider_v all_o these_o will_v show_v how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v from_o a_o light_a esteem_n of_o this_o great_a mystery_n indeed_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o to_o set_v a_o high_a value_n and_o reverence_n upon_o it_o i_o shall_v close_v this_o with_o the_o declaration_n of_o one_o who_o after_o many_o year_n spend_v in_o great_a reputation_n in_o their_o communion_n be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o finish_v his_o day_n in_o our_o church_n upon_o his_o first_o receive_v the_o bless_a communion_n among_o we_o 1678._o we_o andr._n sallii_fw-la votum_fw-la pro_fw-la pace_fw-la c._n 23._o p._n 90._o ed._n oxon._n 1678._o tantam_fw-la magnorum_fw-la praesulum_fw-la demissionem_fw-la tam_fw-la eximiam_fw-la principum_fw-la &_o populi_n reverentiam_fw-la in_fw-la sacra_fw-la eucharistia_n administranda_fw-la &_o recipienda_fw-la nusquam_fw-la ego_fw-la vidi_fw-la apud_fw-la romanenses_n qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la se_fw-la unos_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la istius_fw-la cultores_fw-la jactant_fw-la that_o he_o never_o see_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o great_a a_o reverence_n both_o in_o administer_a and_o receive_v this_o holy_a eucharist_n as_o he_o find_v among_o we_o insomuch_o that_o he_o suppose_v it_o will_v hardly_o be_v believe_v among_o they_o what_o from_o his_o own_o experience_n he_o recount_v concern_v it_o porro_fw-la haec_fw-la quae_fw-la narravi_fw-la &_o trita_fw-la nimis_fw-la ac_fw-la vulgo_fw-la nota_fw-la videbuntur_fw-la fratribus_fw-la nostris_fw-la reformatae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 7._o vid._n ibid._n pag._n 90._o cap._n xxiv_o n._n 7._o nova_fw-la omnino_fw-la &_o fortè_fw-la incredebilia_fw-la apparebunt_fw-la romanae_fw-la congregationis_fw-la alumnis_fw-la quorum_fw-la scilicet_fw-la auribus_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la suggeritur_fw-la per_fw-la suos_fw-la instructores_fw-la nullam_fw-la apud_fw-la protestant_n existere_fw-la fidem_fw-la praesentiae_fw-la christi_fw-la realis_fw-la in_o eucharistiae_fw-la sacramento_n nullam_fw-la devotionem_fw-la aut_fw-la reverentiam_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la sumendo_fw-la and_o this_o may_v suffice_v for_o the_o first_o thing_n propose_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n or_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n profess_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n our_o next_o business_n will_v be_v to_o inquire_v ii_o what_o that_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v which_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o may_v sufficient_o appear_v from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n what_o just_a reason_n we_o have_v to_o reject_v that_o kind_n of_o presence_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n suppose_v of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o now_o in_o answer_n to_o our_o reflection_n upon_o they_o on_o this_o occasion_n 1687._o two_o discourse_n concern_v the_o adoration_n of_o our_o b._n saviour_n in_o the_o eucharist_n oxford_n 1687._o a_o late_a author_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o ourselves_o in_o our_o opinion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v altogether_o as_o absurd_a as_o they_o be_v and_o that_o the_o same_o exception_n lie_v against_o our_o own_o church_n which_o we_o urge_v against_o they_o all_o which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a will_v but_o little_o mend_v the_o matter_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v think_v sufficient_a for_o a_o man_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v not_o mad_a himself_o because_o most_o of_o his_o neighbour_n be_v in_o the_o same_o condition_n indeed_o herein_o he_o must_v be_v allow_v to_o have_v reason_n on_o his_o side_n that_o if_o the_o case_n be_v so_o as_o he_o affirm_v we_o of_o all_o man_n live_v ought_v not_o to_o press_v they_o with_o such_o contradiction_n 16._o tract_n i._o pag._n 15_o 16._o as_o our_o own_o opinion_n stand_v equal_o involve_v in_o it_o be_v true_a he_o confess_v for_o what_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o latter_a 26._o latter_a tract_n i._o i._o 26._o end_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6th_n time_n and_o as_o it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v think_v to_o stand_v now_o since_o the_o 4._o the_o ibid._n ibid._n 4._o revive_n of_o the_o old_a rubric_n against_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n at_o the_o end_n of_o our_o communion-office_n it_o seem_v not_o to_o lie_v open_a to_o such_o a_o recrimination_n but_o take_v our_o opinion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n from_o the_o expression_n of_o our_o own_o divine_n and_o of_o those_o abroad_o such_o as_o calvin_n etc._n etc._n who_o doctrine_n among_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o church_n of_o england_n seem_v rather_o to_o have_v embrace_v and_o agree_v with_o especial_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n by_o q._n elizabeth_n it_o plain_o imply_v that_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n that_o his_o natural_a body_n that_o very_a body_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o crucify_v on_o the_o cross_n be_v present_a as_o in_o heaven_n so_o here_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n either_o to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n or_o to_o the_o symbol_n which_o not_o only_o contradict_v the_o present_a declaration_n of_o our_o church_n viz._n that_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o in_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n but_o will_v also_o lay_v a_o necessity_n upon_o we_o to_o quit_v our_o reason_n too_o that_o we_o give_v for_o it_o viz._n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n to_o be_v in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o at_o one_o time_n and_o on_o which_o we_o seem_v to_o found_v our_o faith_n in_o this_o matter_n this_o be_v i_o think_v the_o design_n of_o the_o former_a of_o those_o discourse_n late_o print_v at_o oxford_n as_o to_z what_o concern_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o in_o answer_n to_o which_o that_o i_o may_v proceed_v as_o distinct_o as_o possible_a i_o shall_v reduce_v my_o reflection_n to_o these_o four_o general_n 1._o what_o be_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 2._o that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o notion_n constant_o maintain_v by_o the_o generality_n of_o our_o divine_n 3._o that_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o rubric_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o upon_o any_o such_o difference_n in_o their_o opinion_n as_o this_o author_n seem_v to_o surmise_v 4._o that_o the_o reason_n allege_v by_o it_o concern_v the_o impossibility_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n exist_v in_o several_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v no_o way_n invalidate_v by_o any_o of_o his_o exception_n against_o it_o but_o before_o i_o enter_v on_o these_o reflection_n i_o can_v but_o observe_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o repeat_v continual_o the_o same_o argument_n against_o we_o without_o either_o add_v of_o any_o the_o least_o new_a force_n to_o they_o or_o even_o take_v notice_n of_o those_o reply_v that_o have_v more_o than_o once_o be_v make_v against_o they_o the_o publisher_n of_o this_o treatise_n have_v not_o be_v so_o indiligent_a a_o observer_n of_o what_o have_v pass_v under_o his_o eye_n with_o reference_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o controversy_n as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o this_o very_a objection_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o first_o discourse_n be_v make_v by_o his_o old_a friend_n t._n g._n above_o nine_o year_n since_o and_o full_o answer_v by_o his_o reverend_n and_o learned_a adversary_n not_o long_o after_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o certain_o ought_v either_o quiet_o to_o have_v let_v alone_o this_o argument_n already_o baffle_v and_o not_o have_v put_v the_o world_n in_o mind_n where_o
esse_fw-la in_o eucharistiâ_fw-la becani_fw-la manuale_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 9_o p._n 501._o ed._n luxembergi_fw-la 1625._o the_o calvinist_n say_v he_o deny_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n on_o the_o other_o here_o be_v one_o will_v prove_v that_o they_o believe_v his_o very_a body_n his_o natural_a body_n now_o in_o heaven_n to_o be_v nevertheless_o at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o they_o will_v let_v we_o once_o know_v what_o it_o be_v they_o will_v stick_v to_o and_o not_o by_o such_o contradictory_n charge_v show_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o both_o their_o accusation_n may_v be_v false_a but_o that_o it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a they_o shall_v both_o be_v true_a and_o indeed_o in_o this_o very_a instance_n they_o be_v both_o false_a calvin_n calvin_n the_o calvinist_n hold_v neither_o the_o one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o extreme_n in_o the_o edition_n of_o his_o institution_n print_v at_o basil_n 1536._o mr._n calvin_n thus_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n we_o say_v 1536._o dicimus_fw-la verè_fw-la &_o efficaciter_fw-la exhiberi_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la naturaliter_fw-la quo_fw-la scil_n significamus_fw-la non_fw-la substantiam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la corporis_fw-la seu_fw-la verum_fw-la &_o naturale_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la illic_fw-la dari_fw-la sed_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la corpore_fw-la no●is_fw-la beneficia_fw-la christus_fw-la praestitit_fw-la ea_fw-la est_fw-la corporis_fw-la praesentia_fw-la quam_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la ratio_fw-la postulat_fw-la edit_fw-la basil_n 8o._o 1536._o that_o they_o be_v true_o and_o efficacious_o exhibit_v to_o we_o but_o not_o natural_o by_o which_o we_o signify_v not_o that_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n or_o that_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v there_o but_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o christ_n do_v for_o we_o in_o his_o body_n this_o be_v that_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n which_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n require_v but_o because_o i_o do_v not_o find_v these_o word_n in_o the_o edition_n of_o that_o book_n since_o lest_o any_o one_o shall_v thereupon_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v also_o change_v his_o opinion_n we_o may_v observe_v the_o very_a same_o deliver_v by_o he_o in_o 1561._o in_o dilucida_fw-la explicacio_fw-la etc._n etc._n contra_fw-la westphalvir_n edit_fw-la anno_fw-la 1561._o another_o of_o his_o book_n and_o which_o will_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o considerable_a in_o that_o it_o be_v write_v purposely_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o matter_n now_o in_o this_o he_o affirm_v 477._o affirm_v christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la non_fw-la modò_fw-la semel_fw-la fuisse_fw-la datum_fw-la in_o salutem_fw-la nostram_fw-la dum_fw-la ad_fw-la explanda_fw-la peccata_fw-la immolatum_fw-la in_o cruse_n fuit_fw-la sed_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o alimentum_fw-la porrigi_fw-la ut_fw-la dum_fw-la ipse_fw-la habitat_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la bonorum_fw-la etiam_fw-la eius_fw-la omnium_fw-la societate_fw-la fruamur_fw-la apud_fw-la hospin_n hist_o sacram._n part_n 2da_fw-la ann._n 1561._o p._n 477._o that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o only_o once_o give_v for_o our_o salvation_n but_o be_v also_o every_o day_n reach_v out_o to_o we_o for_o our_o sustenance_n that_o so_o whilst_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o we_o may_v also_o enjoy_v the_o fellowship_n of_o all_o his_o good_n then_o he_o explain_v how_o christ_n be_v our_o food_n viz._n loco_fw-la viz._n rursum_fw-la alimentum_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la voco_fw-la hoc_fw-la sensu_fw-la quia_fw-la incomprehensibili_fw-la spiritûs_fw-la virtute_fw-la nobis_fw-la vitam_fw-la svam_fw-la inspirat_fw-la ut_fw-la fit_a nobis_fw-la communis_fw-la non_fw-la secus_fw-la atque_fw-la à_fw-la radice_fw-la arboris_fw-la vitalis_fw-la succus_fw-la in_o ramos_fw-la se_fw-la diffundit_fw-la vel_fw-la à_fw-la capite_fw-la in_o singula_fw-la membra_fw-la manat_fw-la vigour_n ibid._n imprimis_fw-la obstaculum_fw-la de_fw-la corporis_fw-la immensitate_fw-la submovere_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la enim_fw-la construe_v finitum_fw-la esse_fw-la caelóque_fw-la comprehendi_fw-la nulla_fw-la erit_fw-la dissidii_fw-la conciliandi_fw-la ratio_fw-la p._n 478_o christus_fw-la sicuti_fw-la in_o gloriam_fw-la coelestem_fw-la semel_fw-la est_fw-la receptus_fw-la ita_fw-la lecorum_n intervallo_fw-la quoad_fw-la carnem_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la dissitus_fw-la divinâ_fw-la autem_fw-la essential_a &_o virtute_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la etiam_fw-la spirituali_fw-la caelum_fw-la &_o terram_fw-la implere_fw-la idem_fw-la ergo_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la semel_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la patri_fw-la in_o sacrificium_fw-la obtulit_fw-la quotidie_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o coena_fw-la offer_v ut_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o spiritual_fw-la alimentum_fw-la tantùm_fw-la de_fw-la modo_fw-la tenendum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la opus_fw-la esse_fw-la descendere_fw-la carnis_fw-la essentiam_fw-la è_fw-la coelo_fw-la ut_fw-la eâ_fw-la pascamur_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la penetranda_fw-la impedimenta_fw-la &_o superandam_fw-la locorum_fw-la distantiam_fw-la sufficere_fw-la spiritùs_fw-la virtutem_fw-la commenta_fw-la procul_fw-la facessant_fw-la qualia_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-la corporis_fw-la ubiquitate_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-la occultâ_fw-la sub_fw-la panis_fw-la symbolo_fw-la inclusi●ne_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-la substantiali_fw-la ejus_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la praesentiâ_fw-la h●spin_n p._n 478_o haec_fw-la omne_fw-la refert_fw-la ex_fw-la illo_fw-la calvini_n loco_fw-la because_o by_o the_o incomprehensible_a virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o inspire_v his_o life_n into_o we_o that_o he_o may_v communicate_v it_o to_o we_o no_o less_o than_o the_o vital_a juice_n be_v diffuse_v from_o the_o root_n into_o all_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o tree_n or_o than_o vigour_n flow_v from_o the_o head_n into_o all_o the_o member_n he_o declare_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v finite_a and_o enclose_v in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o as_o to_o his_o flesh_n to_o be_v distant_a in_o place_n from_o we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o essence_n of_o his_o flesh_n shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n that_o we_o may_v be_v feed_v with_o it_o but_o that_o to_o remove_v all_o such_o impediment_n and_o overcome_v the_o distance_n of_o place_n the_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_a in_o short_a that_o all_o invention_n contrary_a to_o this_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v such_o as_o the_o vbiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o enclose_v of_o it_o under_o the_o symbol_n of_o bread_n and_o his_o substantial_a presence_n upon_o earth_n beza_n beza_n by_o all_o which_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o mr._n calvin_n be_v no_o friend_n to_o our_o author_n fancy_n but_o evident_o explain_v the_o real_a presence_n after_o that_o spiritual_a manner_n we_o have_v before_o lay_v down_o for_o beza_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o he_o call_v they_o of_o the_o same_o sect_n we_o can_v better_o learn_v their_o opinion_n than_o from_o the_o act_n of_o the_o colloquy_n of_o poissy_n and_o which_o chief_o lie_v upon_o this_o point_n at_o this_o conference_n the_o most_o eminent_a man_n of_o the_o calvinian_a party_n be_v assemble_v the_o first_o of_o they_o which_o speak_v be_v beza_n in_o that_o part_n of_o his_o discourse_n which_o refer_v to_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n his_o word_n be_v much_o like_o those_o which_o our_o author_n have_v quote_v out_o of_o he_o and_o by_o his_o own_o exposition_n of_o they_o we_o shall_v be_v better_a able_a to_o judge_n of_o his_o meaning_n than_o by_o his_o adversary_n gloss_n ibid._n gloss_n see_v hospin_n hist_o sacram._n part._n 2._o ad_fw-la ann._n 1561._o p._n 515._o edit_fw-la genev._n 1681._o comment_fw-fr de_fw-fr statu_fw-la relig._n &_o reipub_fw-la in_o galliâ_fw-la ad_fw-la ann._n 1561._o p._n 112._o et_fw-la postea_fw-la pag._n 138._o ita_fw-la se_fw-la exprimit_fw-la in_o eundem_fw-la planè_fw-la sensum_fw-la affirmamus_fw-la j._n c._n adesse_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la coenae_fw-la in_fw-la quâ_fw-la nobis_fw-la offer_v that_o &_o verè_fw-la exhibet_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la suum_fw-la operatione_n spiritus_fw-la sti._n nos_fw-la verò_fw-la recipimus_fw-la edimus_fw-la &_o bibimus_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la &_o per_fw-la fidem_fw-la illud_fw-la ipsum_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la mortuum_fw-la est_fw-la eùmque_fw-la illum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la effusum_fw-la edit_fw-la ann._n 15●7_n 8o._o beze_n hist_o eccles._n pag._n 595_o 596._o for_o all_o this_o see_v beza_n own_o history_n ad_fw-la ann._n 1561._o p._n 524._o and_o when_o in_o the_o conference_n de_fw-fr espense_n press_v they_o with_o depart_v from_o calvin_n beza_n declare_v that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o contrary_a to_o he_o that_o for_o the_o word_n substance_n which_o he_o sometime_o use_v in_o express_v christ_n real_a presence_n it_o be_v only_o to_o signify_v that_o they_o do_v not_o seign_v any_o irraginary_a body_n of_o christ_n or_o fantastic_a reception_n or_o communion_n of_o his_o body_n in_o this_o holy_a supper_n but_o that_o for_o the_o rest_n they_o all_o believe_v that_o no_o one_o can_v participate_v of_o he_o otherwise_o than_o spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n not_o in_o take_v he_o into_o the_o mouth_n or_o ear_n he_o with_o the_o tooth_n see_v pag._n
otherwise_o i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o any_o more_o of_o our_o divine_n who_o live_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o queen_n reign_n hooker_n mr._n hooker_n and_o subscribe_v the_o article_n before-recited_n but_o pass_v on_o direct_o to_o he_o who_o our_o author_n first_o mention_n 6._o tr._n i._o cap._n 2._o 2._o 10._o pag._n 6._o the_o venerable_a mr._n hooker_n and_o who_o judgement_n have_v be_v so_o deserve_o esteem_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v light_o account_v of_o by_o we_o and_o here_o i_o must_v observe_v that_o this_o learned_a person_n be_v draw_v in_o only_a by_o a_o consequence_n and_o that_o no_o very_o clear_a one_o neither_o to_o favour_v his_o opinion_n 54._o difference_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o socinian_n method_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o protestant_n plea_n for_o a_o socinian_n pag._n 54._o the_o truth_n be_v he_o have_v deal_v with_o mr._n hooker_n just_a as_o himself_o or_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n have_v be_v observe_v to_o have_v do_v on_o the_o like_a occasion_n with_o the_o incomparable_a chillingworth_n have_v pick_v up_o a_o passage_n or_o two_o that_o seem_v for_o his_o purpose_n but_o dissemble_v whole_a page_n in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o be_v evident_o against_o he_o for_o thus_o mr._n hooker_n in_o the_o chapter_n cite_v by_o he_o interpret_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n if_o we_o doubt_v say_v he_o what_o those_o admirable_a word_n may_v import_v let_v he_o be_v our_o teacher_n for_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o christ_n be_v himself_o a_o schoolmaster_n let_v our_o lord_n apostle_n be_v his_o interpreter_n content_a we_o ourselves_o with_o his_o explication_n my_o body_n the_o communion_n of_o my_o body_n my_o blood_n the_o communion_n of_o my_o blood._n be_v there_o any_o thing_n more_o expedite_a clear_a and_o easy_a than_o that_o as_o christ_n be_v term_v our_o life_n because_o through_o he_o we_o obtain_v life_n so_o the_o part_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o be_v cause_n instrumental_a upon_o the_o receipt_n whereof_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n ensue_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n most_o bless_v body_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o in_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o again_o p._n 310._o he_o thus_o interpret_v the_o same_o word_n this_o hallow_v food_n through_o the_o concurrence_n of_o divine_a power_n be_v in_o verity_n and_o truth_n unto_o faithful_a receiver_n instrumental_o a_o cause_n of_o that_o mystical_a participation_n whereby_o as_o i_o make_v myself_o whole_o they_o so_o i_o give_v they_o in_o hand_n a_o actual_a possession_n of_o all_o such_o save_a grace_n as_o my_o sacrifice_a body_n can_v yield_v and_o as_o their_o soul_n do_v present_o need_v this_o be_v to_o they_o and_o in_o they_o my_o body_n and_o this_o may_v suffice_v in_o vindication_n of_o mr._n hooker_n those_o who_o desire_v a_o full_a account_n may_v find_v several_a page_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o chapter_n which_o i_o have_v quote_v 1._o bishop_n andrews_n 1_o tract_n pag._n 7._o 7._o xi_o n._n 1._o the_o next_o our_o author_n mention_n be_v the_o learned_a bishop_n andrews_n in_o that_o much_o note_a passage_n as_o he_o call_v it_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o bellarmine_n and_o indeed_o we_o need_v desire_v no_o other_o passage_n to_o judge_v of_o his_o opinion_n in_o this_o matter_n in_o which_o one_a he_o utter_o exclude_v all_o define_n any_o thing_n as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 2._o he_o profess_v that_o a_o presence_n we_o believe_v and_o that_o no_o less_o a_o true_a one_o than_o the_o papist_n 3._o he_o plain_o insinuate_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v much_o the_o same_o as_o in_o baptism_n the_o very_a allusion_n which_o the_o holy_a etc._n holy_a habemus_fw-la christum_fw-la praesentem_fw-la ad_fw-la baptismatis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la habemus_fw-la eum_fw-la praesentem_fw-la ad_fw-la altaris_fw-la cibum_fw-la &_o potum_fw-la augustin_n stola_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la lavatur_fw-la in_o ipsius_fw-la sanguine_fw-la vivo_fw-la i._n e._n in_o lavacro_fw-la regenerationis_fw-la origen_n statim_fw-la baptizatus_fw-la in_o sanguine_fw-la agni_fw-la vir_fw-la meruit_fw-la appellari_fw-la hieron_n christi_fw-la sanguine_fw-la lavaris_fw-la quando_fw-la in_o ejus_fw-la mortem_fw-la baptizaris_fw-la leo._n p._n etc._n etc._n father_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v to_o express_v his_o presence_n by_o in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n which_o since_o our_o adversary_n can_v neither_o deny_v nor_o yet_o say_v be_v so_o real_a as_o to_o be_v essential_a or_o corporeal_a they_o must_v of_o necessity_n allow_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o true_a presence_n which_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v without_o such_o a_o substantial_a one_o as_o this_o author_n here_o contend_v for_o but_o to_o show_v that_o whatever_o this_o bishop_n understand_v by_o the_o real_a presence_n it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o christ_n glorify_a body_n be_v now_o actual_o present_a in_o this_o sacred_a mystery_n will_v appear_v demonstrative_o from_o this_o that_o he_o declare_v it_o be_v not_o this_o body_n which_o we_o either_o represent_v or_o partake_v of_o there_o insomuch_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o can_v there_o be_v a_o transubstantiation_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n suppose_v it_o will_v not_o serve_v our_o turn_n nor_o answer_v the_o design_n of_o this_o sacrament_n it_o be_v in_o his_o sermon_n on_o 1_o cor._n 1641._o see_v sermon_n seven_o on_o the_o resurect_a pag._n 454._o serm._n l●nd_n 1641._o v._o 7_o 8._o we_o will_v mark_v say_v he_o something_o more_o that_o epulemur_n do_v here_o refer_v to_o immolatus_fw-la to_o christ_n not_o every_o way_n consider_v but_o as_o when_o he_o be_v offer_v christ_n body_n that_o now_o be_v true_a but_o not_o christ_n body_n as_o now_o it_o be_v but_o as_o than_o it_o be_v when_o it_o be_v offer_v rend_v and_o slay_v and_o sacrifice_v for_o we_o not_o as_o now_o he_o be_v glorify_v for_o so_o he_o be_v not_o he_o can_v be_v immolatus_fw-la for_o as_o he_o be_v he_o be_v immortal_a and_o impassable_a but_o as_o then_o he_o be_v when_o he_o suffer_v death_n that_o be_v passable_a and_o mortal_a then_o in_o his_o passable_a state_n he_o do_v institute_v this_o of_o out_v to_o be_v a_o memorial_n of_o his_o passable_a and_o passion_n both_o and_o we_o be_v in_o this_o action_n not_o only_o carry_v up_o to_o christ_n sursum_fw-la corda_n so_o that_o christ_n it_o seem_v be_v not_o bring_v down_o to_o we_o but_o we_o be_v also_o carry_v back_o to_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v at_o the_o very_a instant_n and_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o his_o offering_n so_o and_o no_o otherwise_o do_v this_o text_n teach_v so_o and_o no_o otherwise_o do_v we_o represent_v he_o by_o the_o incomprehensible_a power_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n not_o he_o alone_o but_o he_o as_o at_o the_o very_a act_n of_o his_o offering_n be_v make_v present_a to_o we_o and_o we_o incorporate_v into_o his_o death_n and_o invest_v in_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o if_o a_o host_n can_v be_v turn_v into_o he_o now_o glorify_v as_o he_o be_v it_o will_v not_o serve_v christ_n offer_v be_v it_o thither_o must_v we_o look_v to_o the_o serpent_n lift_v up_o thither_o we_o must_v repair_v even_o add_v cadaver_n we_o must_v hoc_fw-la facere_fw-la do_v that_o be_v then_o do_v so_o and_o no_o otherwise_o be_v this_o epulare_fw-la to_o be_v conceive_v and_o so_o i_o think_v none_o will_v say_v they_o do_v or_o can_v turn_v he_o whatsoever_o real_a presence_n than_o this_o bishop_n believe_v it_o must_v be_v of_o his_o crucify_a body_n and_o as_o in_o the_o state_n of_o his_o death_n and_o that_o i_o think_v can_v be_v otherwise_o present_a than_o in_o one_o of_o those_o two_o way_n mention_v above_o by_o archbishop_n cranmer_n and_o both_o of_o which_o we_o willing_o acknowledge_v either_o figurative_o in_o the_o element_n or_o spiritual_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o worthy_o receive_v they_o and_o from_o this_o account_n of_o bishop_n andrews_n opinion_n we_o may_v conclude_v what_o it_o be_v that_o casaubon_n and_o king_n james_n understand_v by_o the_o real_a presence_n spalleto_n asaubon_n king_n james_n a._n bishop_n of_o spalleto_n who_o insist_v upon_o that_o bishop_n word_n to_o express_v their_o own_o notion_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o nor_o can_v we_o make_v any_o other_o judgement_n of_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o spalleto_n tra._n see_v the_o 1._o tra._n who_o in_o the_o next_o 7._o next_o xi_o note_n 2._o pag._n 7._o 201._o 7._o vol._n 3._o de_fw-fr rep._n eccles._n lib._n 7._o cap._n 11._o pag._n 200._o 201._o to_o that_o cite_v by_o our_o adversary_n be_v
also_o be_v omit_v lest_o it_o shall_v give_v offence_n to_o those_o who_o be_v still_o zealous_a for_o their_o mistake_a principle_n and_o worship_n this_o be_v the_o wise_a and_o christian_a design_n of_o that_o excellent_a princess_n and_o how_o happy_a a_o effect_n this_o moderation_n may_v have_v have_v if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o by_o his_o artifice_n and_o authority_n with_o some_o of_o her_o subject_n prevent_v it_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n sufficient_o show_v thus_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o reason_n of_o its_o omission_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n time_n as_o great_a as_o the_o necessity_n of_o its_o first_o insertion_n in_o king_n edward_n and_o in_o this_o state_n it_o continue_v all_o the_o reign_n of_o that_o queen_n and_o of_o her_o two_o successor_n king_n james_n and_o king_n charles_n one_a i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o say_v by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v that_o new_a occasion_n be_v give_v for_o the_o revive_n of_o it_o we_o have_v all_o of_o we_o hear_v and_o many_o of_o we_o see_v too_o much_o of_o it_o how_o order_n become_v superstitious_a and_o decency_n term_v idolatry_n the_o church_n of_o england_n traduce_v as_o but_o another_o name_n for_o popery_n and_o this_o custom_n of_o kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n one_o of_o the_o strong_a argument_n offer_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o now_o when_o panic_n fear_n have_v find_v such_o prevalence_n over_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n as_o to_o destroy_v a_o king_n and_o embroil_v a_o kingdom_n into_o a_o civil_a war_n of_o almost_o twenty_o year_n continuance_n and_o though_o by_o the_o good_a hand_n of_o god_n our_o king_n and_o our_o peace_n be_v again_o restore_v yet_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n be_v still_o unsettle_a and_o in_o danger_n of_o be_v again_o blow_v up_o upon_o the_o least_o occasion_n what_o can_v be_v more_o advisable_a to_o justify_v ourselves_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o popery_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o induce_v they_o to_o a_o conformity_n with_o we_o in_o a_o ceremony_n they_o have_v entertain_v such_o a_o dread_n of_o than_o to_o revive_v that_o ancient_a rubric_n and_o so_o quiet_a the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n now_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o have_v be_v settle_v and_o secure_v before_o this_o i_o be_o persuade_v be_v so_o rational_a a_o account_n as_o will_v both_o justify_v the_o proceed_n of_o our_o governor_n in_o these_o change_n and_o show_v the_o dis-ingenuity_n of_o those_o who_o not_o only_o know_v but_o have_v be_v tell_v these_o thing_n will_v still_o rather_o impute_v it_o to_o a_o imaginary_a waver_a or_o uncertainty_n of_o opinion_n than_o to_o a_o necessary_a and_o christian_a accommodation_n to_o the_o time_n for_o the_o change_n in_o the_o prayer_n of_o consecration_n i_o have_v already_o say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o word_n not_o the_o sense_n and_o if_o our_o governor_n think_v the_o present_a expression_n 〈◊〉_d liable_a to_o exception_n than_o the_o former_a they_o have_v certain_o reason_n for_o the_o alteration_n for_o the_o other_o exception_n there_o be_v very_o little_a in_o they_o whether_o the_o minister_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o sacred_a element_n when_o he_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n as_o at_o this_o time_n or_o only_o consecrate_v they_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o other_o ceremony_n as_o heretofore_o whether_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o use_v only_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o distribution_n or_o with_o most_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o other_o expression_n take_v and_o eat_v this_o etc._n etc._n or_o as_o we_o choose_v rather_o join_v they_o both_o together_o whether_o we_o sing_v the_o gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la deo_fw-la before_o or_o after_o the_o receive_n but_o because_o the_o chief_a mystery_n he_o think_v lie_v in_o this_o that_o whereas_o in_o king_n edward_n day_n the_o rubric_n call_v it_o a_o essential_a presence_n which_o we_o have_v now_o turn_v into_o corporeal_a i_o must_v confess_v i_o will_v not_o undertake_v to_o say_v what_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o be_v if_o they_o think_v this_o latter_a manner_n more_o free_a from_o give_v offence_n than_o the_o other_o will_v have_v be_v i_o think_v they_o do_v well_o to_o prefer_v it_o let_v every_o one_o entertain_v what_o notion_n he_o please_v of_o these_o thing_n this_o i_o have_v show_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o all_o subscribe_v that_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o here_o i._n e._n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o if_o there_o can_v be_v any_o other_o real_a presence_n than_o such_o as_o i_o have_v show_v to_o have_v be_v the_o constant_a belief_n of_o our_o divine_n consistent_a with_o this_o rubric_n i_o shall_v no_o more_o desire_n to_o debar_v any_o one_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o than_o i_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v it_o with_o he_o and_o now_o after_o so_o clear_a a_o account_n as_o i_o have_v here_o give_v of_o the_o several_a change_n that_o have_v be_v make_v in_o our_o rubric_n be_v i_o mind_v to_o recriminate_a and_o tell_v the_o world_n what_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v in_o their_o mass_n &_o those_o in_o point_n infinite_o more_o material_a than_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v allege_v against_o we_o i_o much_o question_n whether_o they_o will_v be_v able_a to_o give_v we_o so_o good_a a_o account_n of_o it_o and_o so_o mething_a of_o this_o i_o may_v perhaps_o offer_v as_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o author_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o accusation_n before_o we_o part_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o go_v on_o to_o the_o last_o thing_n propose_v to_o be_v here_o consider_v 4thly_a that_o the_o reason_n mention_v in_o our_o rubric_n concern_v the_o impossibility_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n exist_v in_o several_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v no_o way_n invalidate_v by_o any_o of_o this_o author_n exception_n against_o it_o now_o these_o being_n most_o of_o they_o found_v upon_o the_o former_a mistake_a notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n false_o impute_v to_o we_o will_v admit_v of_o a_o very_a short_a and_o plain_a consideration_n 1_o st_o he_o observe_v that_o protestant_n 13._o treatise_n one_a one_a xx_o n._n 1._o pag._n 13._o but_o especial_o our_o english_a divine_v general_o confess_v the_o presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o ineffable_a mystery_n well_o be_v it_o so_o what_o will_v he_o hence_o infer_v why_o this_o he_o conceive_v be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o in_o respect_n of_o something_o in_o it_o opposite_a and_o contradictory_n to_o and_o therefore_o incomprehensible_a and_o ineffable_a by_o humane_a reason_n but_o suppose_v they_o shall_v not_o think_v it_o so_o from_o be_v opposite_a and_o contradictory_n to_o but_o because_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n herein_o communicate_v himself_o to_o we_o be_v hide_v from_o and_o above_o our_o humane_a reason_n may_v not_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v it_o still_o be_v call_v a_o ineffable_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n whereas_o the_o other_o will_v make_v it_o rather_o plain_a and_o comprehensible_a nonsense_n it_o be_v a_o strange_a affection_n that_o some_o man_n have_v get_v of_o late_a for_o contradiction_n they_o be_v so_o in_o love_n with_o they_o that_o they_o have_v almost_o bring_v it_o to_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o mystery_n to_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o something_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o opposition_n to_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o what_o by_o their_o notion_n and_o parallel_n have_v advance_v no_o very_a commendable_a character_n of_o christianity_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o religion_n full_a of_o absurdity_n 231._o bishop_n tailor_n polem_n disco_fw-la of_o the_o real_a prefence_n sect._n two_o pag._n 231._o and_o as_o fisher_n the_o jesuit_n once_o tell_v king_n james_n 1_o st_o with_o reference_n to_o this_o very_a subject_n the_o rather_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o reason_n but_o if_o this_o be_v indeed_o our_o author_n notion_n of_o mystery_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v transubstantiation_n can_v be_v no_o other_o mystery_n we_o desire_v he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o confine_v it_o to_o his_o own_o church_n and_o not_o send_v it_o abroad_o into_o the_o world_n as_o we_o too_o we_o be_v persuade_v not_o only_o that_o our_o worship_n must_v be_v a_o reasonable_a service_n but_o our_o faith_n a_o reasonable_a assent_n he_o who_o oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n ibid._n ibid._n say_v bishop_n taylor_n against_o manifest_a and_o certain_a reason_n do_v neither_o understand_v himself_o nor_o they_o reason_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o revelation_n
meneé_v qui_fw-fr se_fw-fr faisoient_fw-fr dans_fw-fr le_fw-fr royaume_n protestant_a minister_n who_o in_o the_o trouble_v of_o france_n be_v bring_v over_o to_o the_o king_n interest_n be_v secret_o reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o permit_v so_o far_o to_o dissemble_v his_o own_o opinion_n as_o not_o only_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n but_o even_o to_o exercise_v the_o function_n of_o his_o ministry_n as_o before_o and_o that_o by_o the_o express_a leave_n of_o his_o holiness_n for_o three_o whole_a year_n the_o better_a to_o carry_v on_o the_o catholic_n cause_n in_o betray_v the_o secret_n and_o manage_v the_o debate_n of_o his_o brethren_n as_o for_o bishop_n forbes_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o spalatto_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v if_o man_n that_o have_v entertain_v the_o design_n of_o reconcile_a all_o party_n be_v force_v to_o strain_v sometime_o a_o little_a far_o than_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o do_v of_o it_o and_o for_o mr._n thorndyke_n we_o have_v see_v that_o his_o notion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v particular_a and_o wide_o different_a both_o from_o they_o and_o we_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o answer_v for_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o but_o however_o to_o quit_v these_o just_a exception_n against_o they_o will_v he_o himself_o allow_v every_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n or_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o i_o shall_v bring_v he_o three_o of_o their_o author_n to_o affirm_v or_o deny_v if_o he_o will_v than_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o their_o doctrine_n for_o i_o have_v already_o quote_v above_o twice_o three_o of_o their_o most_o learned_a man_n against_o it_o to_o adore_v a_o vnconsecrated_a host_n by_o mistake_n be_v idolatry_n for_o so_o s._n thomas_n paludanus_n catharine_n and_o other_o assure_v we_o to_o worship_v the_o host_n suppose_v their_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n false_a a_o worse_a idolatry_n than_o any_o heathen_n be_v ever_o guilty_a of_o so_o several_a of_o their_o writer_n confess_v but_o now_o if_o our_o author_n will_v not_o allow_v this_o to_o be_v good_a argue_v against_o they_o with_o what_o reason_n do_v he_o go_v about_o to_o urge_v it_o against_o we_o second_o we_o must_v in_o the_o next_o place_n consider_v what_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o this_o point_n be_v and_o whether_o what_o this_o author_n have_v advance_v in_o favour_n of_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v their_o practice_n of_o this_o adoration_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o find_v it_o thus_o clear_o set_v down_o by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n i._n council_n trid._n sess_n xiii_o cap._n 5._o p._n 57_o nullus_fw-la itaque_fw-la dubitandi_fw-la locus_fw-la relinquitur_fw-la quin_fw-la omnes_fw-la christi_fw-la fideles_fw-la pro_fw-la more_fw-it in_fw-la catholicâ_fw-la ecclefiâ_fw-la semper_fw-la recepto_fw-la latriae_fw-la cultum_fw-la qui_fw-la vero_fw-la deo_fw-la debetur_fw-la huic_fw-la sanctissimo_fw-la sacramento_n in_o veneratione_n exhibeant_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la ideò_fw-la minùs_fw-la est_fw-la adorandum_fw-la quòd_fw-la fuerit_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la d._n ut_fw-la sumatur_fw-la institutum_fw-la nam_fw-la illum_fw-la eundem_fw-la deum_fw-la praesentem_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la adess●_n credimus_fw-la quem_fw-la pater_fw-la aternus_fw-la introducens_fw-la in_o orbem_fw-la terrarum_fw-la dicit_fw-la et_fw-la adorent_fw-la eum_fw-la omnes_fw-la angeli_fw-la d●i_fw-la hebr._n i._n there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a of_o christ_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o have_v ever_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n aught_o to_o give_v that_o supreme_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o true_a god_n to_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n for_o it_o be_v nevertheless_o to_o be_v adore_v because_o it_o be_v institute_v by_o our_o lord_n christ_n that_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v forasmuch_o as_o we_o believe_v the_o same_o god_n to_o be_v present_a in_o it_o of_o who_o the_o eternal_a father_n when_o he_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o world_n say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o that_o therefore_o according_a to_o this_o council_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v which_o christ_n institute_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o in_o which_o they_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v present_a but_o it_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o these_o trent-fathers_n here_o express_o and_o proper_o style_v it_o which_o we_o all_o confess_v christ_n institute_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o in_o which_o they_o suppose_v christ_n to_o be_v present_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v christo_fw-la card._n pallavicino_n istoria_fw-la del_fw-it concilio_n di_fw-it trento_n parte_fw-la seconda_fw-la l._n 12._o c._n 7._o pag._n 298._o ora_fw-la è_fw-la notissimo_fw-la che_fw-it accióche_fw-it un_fw-it tutto_fw-mi s'adori_fw-es con_fw-mi adorazione_n di_fw-mi latria_n basta_fw-mi che_fw-it una_fw-la parte_fw-la di_fw-it quel_fw-it rutto_fw-mi meriti_fw-la questo_fw-la culto_fw-la come_v dunque_fw-la non_fw-la douremo_fw-la pariment_n adorare_fw-la questo_fw-la sacramento_n il_fw-fr quale_fw-la è_fw-it un_fw-it tutto_fw-mi che_fw-mi contiene_fw-fr come_v part_n principale_v il_fw-fr corpo_fw-it di_fw-it christo_fw-la which_o reason_v i_o find_v card._n pallavicini_n thus_o improve_n in_o his_o history_n of_o this_o council_n it_o be_v well_o know_v say_v he_o that_o to_o make_v a_o whole_a adorable_a with_o the_o supreme_a adoration_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o one_o part_n of_o that_o whole_a merit_n such_o a_o worship_n this_o he_o illustrate_v in_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n humanity_n and_o thence_o conclude_v how_o then_o ought_v we_o not_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o adore_v this_o sacrament_n which_o be_v a_o whole_a that_o contain_v as_o its_o principal_a part_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v therefore_o as_o i_o conceive_v the_o undoubted_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o reason_n here_o give_v be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o that_o supreme_a adoration_n that_o be_v due_a to_o the_o true_a god._n now_o to_o warrant_v their_o practice_n in_o this_o matter_n our_o author_n thus_o proceed_v in_o proof_n of_o it_o i._o he_o premise_n some_o proposition_n which_o he_o call_v discourse_n answer_v to_o his_o second_o discourse_n protestant_a concession_n ii_o some_o other_o which_o he_o style_v catholic_n assertion_n and_o then_o iii_o go_v on_o to_o show_v what_o warrant_v they_o have_v for_o that_o belief_n on_o which_o this_o adoration_n be_v found_v i_o shall_v distinct_o follow_v he_o in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o in_o his_o first_o part_n which_o he_o call_v concession_n i._o part_n protestant_n concession_n protestant_a concession_n i_o will_v go_v on_o with_o he_o thus_o far_o one_a 1._o one_a one_a i._o pag._n 1._o that_o supreme_a and_o divine_a adoration_n be_v due_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n two_o ii_o two_o ibid._n ibid._n ii_o that_o wherever_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n now_o be_v there_o must_v also_o his_o whole_a person_n be_v and_o therefore_o three_o iii_o three_o ibid._n ibid._n iii_o that_o wherever_o christ_n body_n be_v true_o and_o real_o present_a there_o his_o divine_a person_n be_v supreme_o adorable_a but_o now_o for_o his_o next_o assertion_n 2._o assertion_n assertion_n v._o n._n 1._o p._n 2._o that_o it_o be_v affirm_v by_o many_o protestant_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v real_o present_a not_o only_o in_o virtue_n but_o in_o substance_n in_o the_o encharist_n 7._o encharist_n see_v treatise_n 1._o p._n 5._o 5._o 7._o if_o he_o mean_v as_o in_o his_o former_a treatise_n he_o explain_v himself_o that_o the_o very_a natural_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o body_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o crucify_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n be_v also_o as_o to_o its_o substance_n true_o and_o real_o present_a on_o earth_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n or_o to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n i_o have_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n full_o show_v this_o new_a fancy_n to_o be_v neither_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o very_a writer_n who_o he_o produce_v for_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o as_o to_o the_o 1._o the_o disc_n 2._o p._n 8._o 8._o vi_fw-it n._n 1._o adoration_n of_o it_o upon_o any_o such_o account_n i_o have_v just_a now_o declare_v his_o mistake_n of_o they_o in_o that_o point_n too_o and_o i_o shall_v not_o follow_v our_o author_n be_v ill_a example_n in_o repeat_v it_o all_o over_o again_o for_o his_o 10._o his_o his_o seven_o p._n 10._o five_o remark_n that_o the_o lutheran_n affirm_v that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v present_a not_o only_o to_o the_o worthy_a communicant_n but_o to_o the_o consecrate_a symbol_n and_o
etc._n etc._n albertinus_n de_fw-fr euch._n lib._n 3._o p._n 947._o author_n have_v full_o prove_v and_o this_o discourser_n therefore_o aught_o to_o have_v answer_v iii_o ground_n but_o now_o he_o say_v xxvi_o p._n 29._o 29._o xxvi_o if_o these_o council_n be_v decline_v as_o not_o be_v so_o ancient_a as_o some_o may_v expect_v i._n e._n not_o hold_v before_o some_o controversy_n happen_v in_o the_o church_n touch_v the_o point_n they_o decide_v they_o have_v yet_o another_o very_a rational_a ground_n of_o their_o belief_n and_o that_o be_v the_o evident_a testimony_n of_o the_o more_o primitive_a time_n it_o will_v have_v be_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n if_o he_o can_v honest_o have_v say_v of_o the_o most_o primitive_a time_n but_o however_o his_o modesty_n be_v the_o great_a now_o though_o his_o argument_n be_v not_o so_o strong_a as_o to_o the_o point_n of_o antiquity_n r._n treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n by_o a_o author_n of_o the_o c._n of_o r._n i_o have_v already_o full_o discuss_v it_o above_o and_o we_o be_v but_o very_o late_o assure_v by_o one_o of_o their_o own_o author_n that_o antiquity_n be_v of_o our_o side_n in_o this_o point_n for_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o father_n he_o have_v mention_v paschate_n mention_v s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la euseb_n emyssen_n de_fw-fr paschate_n some_o of_o they_o be_v spurious_a other_o have_v be_v 47._o be_v cyril_n hierosol_n in_o the_o relat._n of_o the_o conference_n at_o my_o lady_n t._n 1676._o in_o the_o paper_n send_v my_o lady_n t._n p._n 50_o 51_o 52._o and_o for_o s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr sacr._n allow_v the_o book_n yet_o see_v the_o explication_n of_o what_o be_v there_o say_v give_v by_o himself_o l._n 5._o c._n 4._o see_v a_o late_a treatise_n of_o the_o doct._n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o transub_v compare_v part_v 1._o p._n 46_o 47._o express_o answer_v by_o we_o and_o all_o of_o they_o at_o large_a by_o mounseur_fw-fr aubertine_n larrogue_n and_o other_o if_o this_o do_v not_o satisfy_v he_o he_o may_v short_o expect_v a_o full_a account_n in_o our_o own_o language_n 48._o language_n transubstantiation_n no_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n cyrill_n be_v authority_n examine_v p._n 13_o 14._o ambrose_n p._n 18_o 19_o chrysostom_n p._n 40._o greg._n nyssen'_n p._n 48._o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o which_o have_v already_o be_v give_v to_o the_o world_n in_o earnest_n of_o what_o be_v sudden_o to_o follow_v iv_o ground_n his_o next_o ground_n be_v take_v from_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o late_a both_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n till_o luther_n time_n and_o at_o present_a also_o except_v his_o follower_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o ground_n be_v not_o certain_o true_a and_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o certain_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n 1._o it_o be_v not_o certain_o true_a indeed_o that_o the_o latter_a age_n of_o the_o western_a church_n before_o luther_n that_o be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n do_v profess_v the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v confess_v and_o that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n at_o this_o day_n do_v the_o same_o since_o their_o new_a college_n at_o rome_n and_o their_o money_n and_o missionary_n send_v among_o they_o have_v corrupt_v their_o faith_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v so_o before_o luther_n be_v not_o so_o certain_a and_o whosoever_o shall_v impartial_o read_v over_o the_o long_a debate_n between_o the_o late_a mounseur_fw-fr claude_n and_o mounseur_fw-fr arnaud_n concern_v this_o matter_n will_n i_o believe_v confess_v that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o rational_a ground_n for_o their_o belief_n 48._o hist_o ethiop_n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o n._n 48._o ludolphus_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o ethiopian_a church_n that_o at_o this_o day_n it_o neither_o believe_v transubstantiation_n ibid._n ibid._n nor_o adore_v the_o host_n and_o tellezius_n confess_v it_o because_o they_o consecrate_v with_o these_o word_n this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n for_o the_o 1654._o the_o de_fw-fr eccles_n graec._n stat._n hodiern_n d._n smith_n p._n 116._o lond._n 1678._o claude_n reponse_fw-fr au_fw-fr 2._o traitte_fw-fr liv_o 3._o c._n 8._o p._n 434_o etc._n etc._n charenton_n 1668._o id._n ult_n resp_n à_fw-fr quevilly_n 1670._o lib._n 5._o c._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o histoire_n critic_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr creance_n &_o des_fw-fr coutumes_n des_fw-fr nation_n du_fw-fr levant_n voyage_n du_fw-fr mont_fw-fr liban_n hemarque_n p._n 302_o 303_o etc._n etc._n larrogue_n hist_o de_fw-fr l'eucharistie_a liv_o 2._o c._n 19_o pag._n 781._o edit_fw-la amst_n 12o._o albertinus_n de_fw-fr eucharistiâ_fw-la p._n 988_o 989._o fol._n daventriae_fw-la 1654._o greek_n the_o muscovite_n the_o armenian_n the_o nestorian_n maronites_n etc._n etc._n those_o who_o please_v to_o interest_n their_o curiosity_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o little_a moment_n as_o to_o their_o faith_n may_v satisfy_v themselves_o in_o the_o author_n to_o which_o i_o refer_v they_o though_o now_o 2._o to_o allow_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v true_a i_o pray_v what_o force_n be_v there_o at_o last_o in_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n both_o eastern_a &_o western_a in_o these_o last_o age_n have_v believe_v transubstantiation_n therefore_o the_o papist_n have_v a_o rational_a ground_n to_o believe_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v you_o protestant_n charge_v we_o for_o believe_a transubstantiation_n as_o man_n that_o act_n contrary_a to_o the_o design_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n that_o have_v forsake_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o primitive_a age_n of_o the_o church_n that_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o do_v violence_n to_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n of_o mankind_n be_v it_o so_o yet_o at_o least_o we_o have_v this_o rational_a ground_n for_o our_o belief_n though_o it_o shall_v be_v false_a viz._n that_o we_o do_v all_o of_o we_o peaceable_o and_o quiet_o believe_v it_o till_o you_o come_v with_o your_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n and_o sense_n and_o reason_n to_o raise_v doubt_n and_o difficulty_n about_o it_o nay_o more_o we_o all_o of_o we_o still_o do_v believe_v it_o except_o those_o that_o you_o have_v persuade_v not_o to_o do_v so_o spectatum_fw-la admissi_fw-la risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la amici_n v._o ground_n xxviii_o p._n 31._o 31._o xxviii_o of_o no_o great_a strength_n be_v his_o last_o ground_n for_o their_o belief_n viz_o that_o since_o luther_n time_n no_o small_a number_n of_o protestant_n even_o all_o the_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v proceed_v thus_o far_o as_o to_o confess_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o adoration_n of_o it_o as_o present_v there_o for_o 1._o if_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v this_o yet_o it_o seem_v we_o be_v mistake_v in_o it_o and_o than_o what_o ground_n can_v it_o be_v for_o a_o papist_n to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n that_o we_o heretic_n by_o a_o mistake_n do_v not_o believe_v it_o but_o only_o a_o real_a spiritual_a presence_n and_o as_o such_o be_v anathematise_v by_o they_o for_o our_o error_n 2._o i_o have_v before_o show_v that_o be_v this_o a_o rational_a ground_n yet_o it_o fail_v they_o too_o for_o neither_o do_v the_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o any_o other_o that_o i_o know_v of_o either_o believe_v christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v substantial_o present_a in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n or_o to_o be_v adore_v there_o i_o be_o sure_a if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o they_o can_v be_v the_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o matter_n who_o believe_v so_o express_o contrary_a to_o her_o formal_a declaration_n as_o this_o author_n have_v himself_o observe_v and_o then_o for_o the_o lutheran_n 32._o ibid._n pag._n 32._o to_o who_o he_o again_o return_v it_o be_v hard_o to_o conceive_v what_o rational_a ground_n of_o security_n they_o can_v derive_v from_o their_o practice_n that_o because_o they_o commit_v no_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v what_o they_o know_v certain_o to_o be_v christ_n the_o papist_n commit_v none_o for_o worship_v what_o he_o do_v not_o know_v certain_o be_v christ_n in_o truth_n what_o if_o he_o please_v he_o may_v know_v certain_o be_v not_o christ_n and_o now_o after_o a_o serious_a and_o impartial_a consideration_n of_o the_o ground_n produce_v in_o vindication_n of_o this_o worship_n though_o i_o can_v have_v wish_v i_o may_v have_v find_v they_o as_o rational_a as_o our_o author_n pretend_v they_o to_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v glad_a as_o they_o be_v that_o they_o may_v hereafter_o prove_v sufficient_a to_o excuse_v they_o from_o the_o gild_n of_o formal_a idolatry_n in_o this_o adoration_n yet_o i_o must_v needs_o say_v i_o do_v in_o my_o conscience_n think_v it_o be_v more_o a_o excess_n of_o